•£o: iA»eti >p Class Book COPYRIGHT DEPOSn LECTURES ON PEDAGOGY THEOEETICAL AND PEACTICAL. GABRIEL COMPAYRE, (» Author of "Histoire de la Peua*gogie," Professor in the Normal Schools of Fontenay-aux-Roses and Saint Clold, amj Member of the Chamber of Deputies. TRANSLATED, WITH AN INTRODUCTION, NOTES, AND AN APPENDIX, ''V Hr WV Hr PAYNE, A.M., Chancellor of the University of Nashville and President of the Peabody Normal College ; Author of " Chapters on School Supervision," " Outlines of Educational Doctrine," and " Contrtbutions to the Science of Education" Editor of "Page's Theory and Practice OF Teaching " ; and Translator of COMPAYRE's " Histoire de LA Pedagogie." 39^5 BOSTON : D. C. HEATH & CO., PUBLISHERS. 1887- LB (-IS Copyright, 1887, By W. H. PAYNE. RESS OF HENRY H. CLARK * CO., BOSTON. I K TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE. In recent years the literature of education has been enriched by no contributions superior to Coinpayre's "Histoire de la Pedagogic" and " Cours de Pedagogic, Theorique et Pratique." The qualities that are so conspicuous in the first, — wise selection of material, absolute clearness of statement, judicial fairness in the treatment of open questions, critical insight, width of intellectual perspective, elegance of diction, — also characterize the second ; and these two volumes may be accepted as the best resume yet made of the his- tory, the theory, and the practice of education. M. Compayre is too wise, too catholic, and too honest to be an extremist, and his familiarity with the history of education has presei'ved his respect for the thinkers and teachers of the past, and has saved him from the illusion that a revolution in doctrines and methods is imminent. As the reader proceeds from chapter to chapter he is affected by the words of a judge whose sole preoccu- pation is the truth, and not of an attorney who is addressing a jury- box. In the wide and wise economy of things, partisans and ex- tremists doubtless have their uses ; but the habit of mind that is most worthy of cultivation is temperance, candor, and judicial fair- ness in dealing with a question so complex and difficult as that of education. This is the prevailing spirit of every volume which has proceeded from the pen of M. Compayre. These lectm-es will commend themselves to that class of teachers, now happily growing in numbers, who are looking to psychology as the rational basis of their art. They will discover, perchance to their surprise and delight, that psychology is not an occult sci- ence, but that the main laws and essential facts of the intellectual life can be expressed in intelligible terms. This subject, like every IV PREFACE. other upon which man makes a trial of his thought, finally shades off into transcendental vagueness and uncertainty; l)ut happily the portions tliat have a real value for guidance lie quite within the compass of the common understanding. For the purposes of disinterested science the mind may l)e analyzed as though it were an inert thing, just as a dead body may be dissected, and most psychologies seem to have been written from this point of view ; but for the teacher's use the mind should be studied in its cardinal movements when engaged in the process of learning. Such in the main is M. Compayre's treatment of the subject in Part First of these Lectures. The thoughtful reader can hardly fail to experience the charm of the author's ardent patriotism. In this volume the teacher is considered as enlisted in the service of the state, working for her preservation, her prosperity, her glory ; and the common school is a moidd out of which shall issue the highest type of republican citizenship. The teacher who surveys his work from this vantage- ground must be made of poor stuff if he does not feel a conscious pride in his calling, and does not attain a higher success by keep- ing steadily and clearly in view this goal of his efforts. In America, as in France, the state by deliberate intent as well as by a necessary evolution has become an educator. The public school is a civil institution, but on this account it is neitlier god- less, unchristian, nor immoral. Between the church and the state there has come about a division of functions, and there is no good reason why they may not cooperate as honorable and helpful allies. This thought has never been more tersely and beautifully expressed than in these words by our author : " We shall contimie to build on our solid bases of justice, charity, and tolerance the human city, while leaving to the ministers of religion the task of building beside it what Saint Augustine called *lie city of God." The teacher's happiness and professional improvement both re- quire that he should have an educational creed as an intellectual and moral support. In education, as in politics and religion, a firm belief in certain first principles is necessary in order to give stability to character and to make continuous growth possible. PEEFACE. V For the ends here pointed out, it is not required that educational creeds should be uniform, the essential thing being merely that each teacher hold fast to some system of probable truth ; but it is necessaiy that each one's creed be elastic enough to accommodate new truths or modifications of old truths. We may well take alarm when we are no longer conscious of such internal modifica- tions of our educational beliefs. The best service a book can ren- der a teacher is to assist him in the formation of his opinions, and for this purpose it must be dispassionate in toiie and must carry critical insight into all its discussions. This volume is pervaded by this spirit, so wholesome and helpful, and I experience no little happiness from the thought that by means of this translation I may help American teachers in the formation of a rational educational creed. The catholic spirit everywhere manifested by M. Compayre jus- tifies me in expressing mild and cautious dissent on a few mani- festly open questions ; and I have ventured to express my tliought in a few brief articles in the Appendix. If this volume shall meet the hearty approval that was given the " History of Pedagogy," I shall feel anew my obligations to the teaching profession. W. H. PAYNE. Nashville, April 1, 1888. AUTHOR'S PREFACE. I DO not presume to offer to the public, in this volume, a com- plete treatise on education : my purpose is simpler and more mod- est. In bringing together the lectures given in the higher normal schools of Fontenay-aux-Roses and Saint Cloud, I have simply intended to compose an elementary manual of teaching. In the vast field of the principles and the practice of education, I have selected only the indispensable ideas, those of which no one who educates and instructs children can afford to be ignorant. In the composition of this volume I have made free use of the ■works of my predecessoi's. The best praise that can be given them is to do what I have done, — quote them on almost every page. However, I have endeavored not to imitate them, in at least two respects, — their dryness and their prolixity. Too many manuals of teaching, in fact, are but dry nomencla- tures, in which the spirit of pure form reigns supreme and multiplies divisions, definitions, and distinctions of every sort, with a pedan- tic display which seems borrowed from the ancient logic. On the other hand, taking advantage of the intimate relations between pedagogy and the philosophical sciences, other writers on education have given undue extension to the sphere of their art, having included in it, in fact, the whole of psychology, the whole of ethics, and the whole of philosophy. I have sought a just medium between these extremes, and have attempted to make my treatment of the subject at once simple and of living interest. I do not think it enough to enumerate a certain number of abstract rules and scholastic formulas : my treatment ascends to principles, but with as much discretion as possible. From the Vm PREFACE. medley of modern lucubrations it lops oft" everything superfluous, in order to reserve for use what is really essential ; it restricts itself to the clearest and the most practical conceptions. 1 divide my treatise into two very distinct parts. I first study the child in himself, in his natural development, and in the formal culture of his faculties ; and then, abandoning the subject of edu- cation, I examine the object of it, — that is to say, instruction and discipline, the methods of the one and the principles and rules of the other. In the first part, I call to my aid all who have studied child- hood, correcting and completing their observations by my own studies. In the second part, I have expressly consulted those who have professional competence, who have in their own practice put to tlie test methods of instruction and principles of discipline. For example, in order to extract the practical suggestions that are, as it were, buried in them, I have perused the voluminous and interesting Rapports of the Inspectors-General upon the condition of primary instruction.^ Without doubt, the best system of teaching, like the best logic, is still that which we make for ourselves through study, experi- ence, and personal reflection. Certainly, it is not required to have learned by heart and recited, as some authors of teachers' manuals still demand, a catechism of method ; but in order to aid the reflection and guide the experience of each novice in instruction, the book is very far from being useless, though it do nothing more than stimulate personal reflection. It is just in this spirit, less for imposing doctrines than for suggesting reflec- tions, that this modest volume has been written. I trust that it may receive the same welcome as my " History of Pedagogy," of which it is the sequel. 1 Paris, Imprimerie nationale, 1879-1880, 1881-1882. TABLE OF CONTENTS. PAGE Translator's Preface iii Author's Preface vii Part I. — Theoretical Pedagogy 1-261 Chapter I. — Education in General 3-27 Chapter II. — Physical Education 28-51 Chapter III. — Intellectual Education 52-72 Chapter IV. — The Education of the Senses .... 73-93 Chapter V. — Culture of the Attention 94-113 Chapter VI. — Culture of the Memory 114-137 Chapter VII. — Culture of the Imagination .* 138-158 Chapter VIII. — The Faculties of Reflection, Judgment, Abstraction, Reasoning 159-184 Chapter IX. — Culture of the Feelings ....... 185-202 Chapter X. — Moral Education 203-226 Chapter XI. — Will, Liberty, and Habit 227-244 Chapter XII. — The Higher Sentiments : ^Esthetic Educa- tion ; Religious Education 245-261 Part II. — Practical Pedagogy 203-476 Chapter I. — Methods in General 265-289 Chapter II. — Reading and Writing 290-300 Chapter III. — Object-lessons 310-324 Chapter IV. — The Study of the Mother Tongue .... 325-342 Chapter V. — The Teaching of History 343-361 X CONTENTS. Chapter VI. — The Teaching of Geography 362-378 Chapter VII. — The Teaching of the Sciences 379-396 Chapter VIII. — Morals and Civic Instruction 397-416 Chapter IX. — Drawing. — Music. — Singing 417-432 Chapter X. — Tlio Other Exercises of the School . . . 433-446 Chapter XI. — Rewards and Punishments 447-462 Chapter XII. — Discipline in General 463-476 Appendix 477-481 A. The Doctrine of Memory ' . . . 477 B. Analysis and Synthesis 478 C. The Problem of Primary Reading 479 D. The Value of Subjects 480 Index 483-491 PART FIRST. THEOEETICAL PEDAGOGY. THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. CHAPTER I. EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 1. Origin of the Word Education. — "Education" is a word relatively new in the French language. Montaigne employs it only once, in a sentence often quoted: "I pro- test against all violence in the education of a tender soul, which is being trained for honor and liberty."^ With this exception, he always employs the expression institution cles enfaiits, from which we have the word instituteur. The writers of the sixteenth century were accustomed to use the word notirritnre in the same sense, as in the well- known proverb, Nourriture passe nature (Nurture is more than Nature). But in the seventeenth century, "educa- tion " comes into current use to designate the art of train- 2. Education is the Prerogative of Man. — To man must be reserved the noble term education. Training suffices for animals, and cultivation for plants. Man alone is susceptible of education, because he alone is capable of governing himself, and of becoming a moral being. An animal, through its instincts, is all that it can be, or at least all that it has need of being. But man, in order to 1 Montaigne, Essais, I., II., Chap. VIII. 4 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. perfect himself, has need of reason and reflection ; and as at birth he does not himself possess these qualities, he must be brought up by other men. 3. Is THERE A Science of Education? — No one doubts, to-day, the possibility of a science of education. Education is itself an art, skill embodied iu practice ; and this art certainly supposes something besides the knowledge of a few rules learned from books. It requires experience, moral qualities, a certain warmth of heart, and a real in- spiration of intelligence. There can be no education with- out an educator, any more than poetry without a poet, — that is, without some one who by his personal qualities vivifies and applies the abstract and lifeless laws of treatises on education. But, just as eloquence has its rules derived from rhetoric, and poetry its rules derived from poetics ; just as, in another order of ideas, medicine, which is an art, is based upon the theories of medical science ; so education, before being an art in the hands of the masters who practise it, who enrich it by their versatility and their devotion, who put upon it the impress of their mind and heart, — education is a science which philoso- phy deduces from the general laws of human nature, and which the teacher perfects by inductions from his own experience. There is, therefore, a science of education, a practical and applied science, which now has its principles and laws, which gives proof of its vitality by a great number of pub- lications, both in France and abroad, and which has also its peculiar designation, Pedagogy^ although there is still hesitation in adopting it. 4. Pedagogy and Education. — It is to be regretted that so many writers still confound pedagogy with education. EDUCATION IN GENERAL. ■ 5 There is more than a shade of difference between these two terms. Pedagogy, so to speak, is the theory of education, and education the practice of pedagogy. Just as one may be a rhetorician without being an orator, so one may be a pedagogue — that is, may have a thorough knowledge of the x'ules of education — without being an educator, without having practical skill in the training of children.^ " To form a man," says Marion, eloquently, " is a fine art, a perilous undertaking. In this art do not venture the infallibility of a systematic geometry, and do not expect from it the supreme tranquillity of finely wrought demonstrations. In the prosecution of this art there will be contest, the unforeseen, brusque transi- tions, whims, failures, recoveries, inertia, the miracles of free and active nature. There will be all the tumultuous ebb and flow, the bursting into harmony and the degenerating into chaos, which are in man as well as in the sea." ^ But from these difficulties in practice we must not con- clude either that the rules of education do not exist, or that it is useless to know them. In medicine also how much 1 M. Compayrc's use of the terms pedagogy and pedagogue may be illustrated as follows : A writer who discusses educational questions from the theoretical point of view is a pedagogue, and his treatise is a work on pedagogy ; while a man who directs educational affairs without actually teaching, as a superintendent of public instruction or of schools, is an educator. A history of pedagogy is an account of the rise, progress, and present state of educational theories or ideas ; while a history of education is an account of the rise, progress, and present state of educational systems and establishments. In other words, education in its theoretical or scientific aspect is pedagogy ; while in its practical aspect, or in its art-phase, it is education. But if distinctive terms are needed to designate these two phases, why not call education in the first sense Pedagogics, and in the second Pedagogy? We might thus escape the tautology of theoretical peda- gogy and the inconsistency of practical pedagogy. (P.) 2 Marion's Lectures on the Science of Education, Manuel ge'neral de rinstruction primaire, Paris, 1884, p. 13. 6 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. that is uuforeseen, what freaks of nature, how many sur- prises that baffle our fears or deceive our hopes ! And yet what we deuiand above all else of a physician is to have a thorough knowledge of the principles and rules of his art. Let it not ]:»e said, then, that for educating men there is required neither precision of anal^'sis nor science. Let it be said, rather, that all this is not enough, because living nature, by its sudden upheavals and unexpected falls, by its mobility and its diversity, can hold in check the best-established calculations. But recollect, however, that there are rules and principles, if not infallible, at least generally efficacious. Recollect, also, that these rules are becoming more exact day by day, and that with the progress of science tliis approximation becomes greater and greater. The further w^e go, the better we know childhood, and the more deeply we fathom the laws of human nature ; the more perfect, also, educational methods become, and the more nearly tiiey approach the truth. It is said that experience is everything and science nothing ; but what, pray, is science itself, if not the experience of the ancients and of all those who have preceded us? Then let us not allow ourselves to think, with Diesterweg, that the study of peda- gogy is of no account, and that one is born an educator just as one is born a poet.^ Let us not fall into the pre- judice of thinking that a professor or a teacher has no more need of knowing the theoretical laws of education and instruction than we have of learning the functions of diges- tion from a book on physiology, in order that our food may be properly digested. In the matter of education, that which is worth still more than inspiration is inspiration enlightened and regulated by science. 1 CEuvres Choisies de Diesterweg. Hachette, 1884, p. 272. EDUCATION IN GENEliAL. 7 5. Pedagogy, and its Scientific Principles. — Can it be said that pedagogy has now become an organized science, and that recent progress has liberated it from those gropings and uncertainties whicli every science traverses in its earlier stages ? We do not go so far in our assumptions. Notwithstanding the great feats already accomplished, it is still necessary to repeat to-day what Diesterweg said in 1830. The scientific coordination of the precepts and experiments of pedagogy is still rather an aspiration or a hope than an accomplished fact. "Would to God," he wrote, "that we had made enough progress so that, I do not say all men, but merely men of culture, were agreed as to the best mode of education ; that we could not only determine with certainty what is good and what is bad, and what the results are of such or such a method, but also give a reason for our conclusions." ^ But if we still have need of seeking the solution of certain problems, we at least know where these solutions can be found, and from what sources we must draw in order to give more and more exactness to our conceptions of educa- tion. Like all the practical sciences, pedagogy rests upon certain theoretical data, or upon a scientific basis. 6. The Relation of Pedagogy to Psychology. — Just as the physician ought to know the organs and the func- tions of the body which he treats, the farmer the nature of the soil which he cultivates, and the sculptor the qualities of the marble which he chisels and of the clay which he kneads, so the teacher cannot do without the knowledge of the laws of the mental organization, — that is, the study of psychology. In truth, the rules for teaching are but the laws of psy- 1 Diesterweg, op. cit, p. 54. 8 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. chology applied, transformed into practical maxims, and tested by experience. Psychology is the basis of all the practical sciences which have to do with the moral faculties of man ; but the other sciences which are derived from psychology treat of but certain energies of the human soul, — logic, of thought; aesthetics, of the sentiment of the l)eautiful ; ethics, of the will. Pedagogy alone embraces all faculties of the soul, and should put under contribution the whole of psychology. 7. Is THERE AN InFANT PSYCHOLOGY? It is UOt, llOW- ever, general psychology, the psychology of the grown man, which alone ought to inspire the teacher. Whatever may have l)een said a])out it, there is a psychology of the child, because there is a childhood of the soul. The idealists, like Malebranche, should be the only ones to assert that the human spirit has no age, that from the hour of birth it is all that it can become, and that it is already capable of comprehending the loftiest abstractions.^ To an impartial observer it is evident that the mind is developed and formed in accordance with certain laws of growth which definitely constitute the psychology of the child. Psychol- og}', in a word, is not an invarialile geometry, establishing immutable theorems. ])ut a history, at least for the first years of life, which relates the gradual evolution of the different faculties. It has been truly said that if we wish to train a man, we must know the psychology of men ; Imt we would add that if we would educate a child, we must stud}^ the psychology of the child.2 1 See Compayre, History of Pedagogy (Boston: 188G), p. 193. 2 It is safer, with Pestalozzi, to loolv for tlie man in tlie child, than to regard the cliild as being sui generis. The proaress from childliood to manhood is an insensible transition ; there is no brusque passage EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 9 8. The Relations of Pedagogy with other Sciences. — Of course, siuce pedagogy embraces the whole human being, it does not derive its inspiration from psN'chology alone. In order to give a competent treatment of physical education, and even of certain parts of intellectual and moral education, biology in general, and more particular^ the anatomy and physiology of man, are summoned to render important services. In the same way it would be eas}^ to prove that pedagogy cannot dispense with the aid of ethics and logic. Educa- tion tends to lead man to his proper destination, and it is ethics which determines the real end of human actions, the essential nature of all that we call good and desiral)le. On the other hand, education is the culture of thought and reason, and it is logic which makes known the best methods of weighing knowledges in order to discover the truth. Pedagogy, or the science of education, then, has its method, which consists in observing all the facts of the pliysical and moral life of man, or rather in making use of the general laws which inductive reflection has constructed from these facts. Let us now define with greater precision its object and the principles which ought to guide it. 9. Different Definitions of Education. — The educa- tors are rare who, like Locke, have written formal treatises on education without defining it, without collecting into one single formula the elements of their system.^ In general, from one to the other, such as seems to be implied in the term '' infant psychology." However, this distinction will be serviceable if it shall emphasize the need of adapting instruction to the powers and the mental needs of the child. Dr. White's discussion of this subject (Elements of Pedagogy) is valuable. (P.) 1 See the opening paragraphs of Thoughts on Education. 10 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. each writer on education lias his own definition, and this diversit}' is chiefly due to the fact that the greater number have wrongly included in their definitions the indication of the particular methods and diftereut means which educa- tion calls to its aid. It will not be without interest to mention in this place the principal definitions that are of note, either on account of the names of their authors or of the relative exactness of their connotations. One of the most ancient, and also one of the best, is that of Plato: — " The purpose of education is to give to the body and to the soul all the beauty and all the perfection of which they are capable." The perfection of human nature, such indeed is the- ideal purpose of education. It is in the same sense that Kant, Madame Necker de Saussure, and Stuart Mill have given the following defini- tions : — " Edvication is the development in man of all the perfection which his nature permits." " To educate a child is to put him in a condition to fulfil as perfectly as possible the purpose of his life." " Education includes whatever we do for ourselves and whatever is done for us by others, for the express purpose of bringing us nearer to the perfection of our nature." Here it is the general purpose of education which is prin- cipally in view. But the term perfection is somewhat vague, and requires some explanation. Herbert Spencer's definition responds in part to this need : — "Education is the preparation for complete living." But in what does complete living itself consist? The definitions of German educators give us the reply : — EDUCATION IN GENERAL. ll "Education is at once the art and the science of gaiiding the young and of putting them in a condition, by the aid of insti'uc- tion, through the power of ennilation and good example, to attain the triple end assigned to man by his religious, social, and national destination." (Niemeyer.) " Education is the harmonious and equable evolution of the luunan faculties by a method founded uj)on the nature of the mind for developing all the faculties of the soul, for stirring up and nourishing all the principles of life, while shunning all one- sided culture and taking account of the sentiments on which the strength and worth of men depend." (Stein.) " Education is the harmonious development of the physical, intellectual, and moral faculties." (Deuzel.) These definitions have the common fault of not throwing into sharper relief the essential cliaracter of education properly so called, which is the premeditated, intentional action which the will of a man exercises over the cliild to insti'uet and train him. They might be applied equally well to the natural, instinctive, and predetermined develop- ment of the human faculties. In this respect we prefer the following formulas : — " Education is the process by which one mind forms another mind, and one heart another heart." (Jules Simon.) " Education is the sum of the intentional actions by means of which man attempts to raise his fellows to perfection." (Marion.) " Education is the sum of the efforts whose purpose is to give to man the complete possession and correct use of his different faculties." (Henry Joly.) Kant rightly demanded that the purpose of education should be to train children, not with reference to their success in the present state of human society, but with reference to a better state possible in the future, in accord- ance with an ideal conception of luimanity. We must surely assent to these high and noble aspirations, without 12 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. forgetting, however, the practised aims of educational effort. It is in this sense that James Mill wrote : — " The end of education is to render the individual as much as possible an instrument of happiness, first to himseK, and next to other beings." Doubtless this definition is incomplete, but it has the merit of leading us back to the practical realities and the real conditions of existence. The word happiness is the utilitarian translation of the word perfection. A lofty idealism should not make us forget that the human being aspires to be happy, and that happiness is also a part of his destination. Moreover, without losing sight of the fact that education is above all else the disinterested development of the individual, of one's personality, it is well that the definition of education should remind us that we do not live solely for ourselves, for our own single and selfish perfection, but that we also live for otliers, and that our existence is subordinate to that of others. What are we to conclude from this review of so many different definitions? First, that their authors have often complicated them b}' the introduction of various elements foreign to the exact notion of the word education, and that it would perhaps be better to be satisfied to say, with Rousseau,, for the sake of uniting simply on tlie sense of the word, " Education is the art of bringing up children and of forming men." But if we are determined to include in the definition of education the determination of the subject upon which it acts and tlie object which it pursues, we shall find the elements of such a conception here and there in the ilifferent formulas which we have quoted. It would suffice to bring them together and to say : — "Eduralinn is the sum of the leHective efforts by which we aid EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 13 nature in the development of the physical,^ intellectual, and moral faculties of man, in view of his perfection, his happiness, and his social destination." 10. Division of Education. — Education comprises dif- ferent divisions, which correspond to a similar division of the faculties of human nature. Whatever theory may be held as to the nature of the soul, whether it be considered as a distinct and independent substance or as related to the body as effect to its cause, the duality of the physical and the moral is no less real on this account. Hence there is a prime distinction to be made between the education of the body and the education of the mind. But the mind itself is subdivided into a certain number of faculties. Thus it has long been the custom to distin- guish intellectual education from moral education, the first cultivating the intellectual faculties and communicating knowledges, the other developing the heart and the will, and forming the sentiments, the habits, the conscience, and the moral powers. In truth, it were preferable, having once started in this line of thought, to follow to the end the psychological division of the faculties, and to distinguish the education ^ In a definition of education we cannot omit the development of tlie physical faculties. Yet many educators pass them by in silence. This is easily accounted for in the case of theologians, like Dupau- loup, who define education as "the art of preparing for the life eternal by exalting the present life." But it is not so easy to explain what Mr. Bain says : " Physical education, however important it may be, may be kept quite separate." (Education as a Science, p. 3.) So an English writer, James Sully, defines education in too narrow a sense when he says that it is " the practical science which aims at cultivating the mind on the side of Knowing, Feeling, and Willing alike." {Outlines of Psychologij, p. 15.) 14 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. of the intelligence, the education of the sentiments, and the education of the will. Horace Mann, the American educator, distinguished the tliree essential parts of education in the following eloquent extract : — "By the word education I mean much more than the ability to read, write, and keep common accounts. I comprehend, under this noble word, such a training of the body as shall build it up with robustness and vigor, at once protecting it from disease and enabling it to act formatively upon the crude substances of nature, — to turn a wilderness into cxxltivated fields, forests into ships, or quarries and claj'-pits into villages and cities. I mean also to include such a cultivation of the intellect as shall enable it to discover those permanent and mighty laws which pervade all parts of the ci-eated universe, whether material or spiritual. This is necessary, because, if we act in obedience to these laws, all the resistless forces of Nature become our auxiliaries and cheer us on to cei'tain prosperity and triumph ; but if we act in contravention or defiance of these laws, then Nature resists, thwarts, l)affles us, and in the end it is just as certain that she will overwhelm us with ruin, as it is that God is stronger than man. And, finally, by the term Education I mean such a culture of our moral atfections and religious susceptibilities as, in the course of Natiu-e and Providence, shall lead to a subjection or conformity of all our appetites, propensities, and sentiments to the will of Heaven. "' i 11. Another Division of Education. — Tlie preceding division is founded on the consideration of the subject, ■ — that is, of the faculties of man ; but if we regard the object, or the end of education, other divisions are made necessary. In fact, a general or liberal education, which is meet for all, is one thing, and a professional or technical education, which prepares only for a given vocation, is quite another. At the normal school, for exituqdiN it is not the purpose 1 Lectures nn Edncntum. Boston, 1855, pp. 117, 118. EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 15 merely to educate men, but to train teachers ; to a general education there is added a special education, an education in pedagogy. " These two species of education," says Dupanloup, " a general and liberal education, and a special and professional education, are equally important to man. Moreover, they are not opposed to one another. Directly to the contrary, they strengthen and pei'fect one another ; each is accomplished tlu'ough the other. To neglect one to the advantage of the other would be to weaken them, and often to ruin both at once." ^ 12. Liberal Education. — The true term which should be applied to the education which is general and essential is "liberal education," although this term has till now been expressly reserved for the studies which prepare for the liberal professions. If all men are free, morally free in the determination of their actions, and politicall}' free through their participa- tion in the government of the society of which they form a part, is it not evident that they all have the right, what- ever may be their condition, to a liberal education which enlightens and emancipates their mind and their will ? For- merly the classical humanities, the dead languages, were regarded as the sole instrument of a liberal education ; but to-day historical and scientific studies, even reduced to their simplest elements, appear to us to be studies truly liberalizing, and constitute what might be called the primary humanities. Even the physical exercises which give agility to the body and prepare it to become at a later period the docile instrument of professional education, constitute in one sense a part of a liberal education, " That man has received a liberal education," says Mr. Huxley, " who has been so trained in youth that his body is the ready 1 Dupanloup, Be VEducation, tome I., p. 312. 16 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. servant of his will, and does with ease and pleasure all the work that, as a mechanism, it is capable of ; whose intellect is a clear, cold, logical engine, with all its parts of equal strength and in smooth working order, ready, like a steam-engine, to be turned to any kind of work, and spin the gossamers as well as forge the anchors of the mind ; whose mind is stored with a knowledge of the great and fundamental truths of Nature and of the laws of her operations ; one who, no stunted ascetic, is full of life and fire, but whose passions are trained to come to heel by a vigorous will, the servant of a tender conscience ; who has learned to love all beauty, whether of Nature or of art, to hate all vileness, to respect others as himself." ^ It is not necessary, then, in order to receive a liberal education, to aim at a high intellectual instruction. It suffices that the elementary instruction has been directed in such a way as to prepare for the free development of the reason. It may be said, in one sense, that the old educa- tion of the Jesuits was not a liberal education, since it did not tend in a sufficient degree towards the emancipation of the will and the mind. On the contrary, a poor workman gives his children a liberal education if he strives to open their intelligence and to fortify their moral energy, even though it is within his power to teach them nothing else than the elements of the sciences. 13. The Principle of Nature. — Especially since Rousseau's time, educational writers are fond of repeating that the grand ])rinciple of education is conformity to the laws of nature. We do not intend to oppose this notion. The nearer we come to the natural needs of the child, the more fully we take into account his aptitudes, the more perfectly shall we adapt the objects and the methods of instruction to the progressive development of his faculties, 1 Lay Sermons, pp. 34, 35. EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 17 and to the greater degree shall we make of education a useful and truly efficacious work, particularly if we take account, not only of the general nature of man, but of the particular nature of each child. "Man," says Diesterweg, "ought to become what nature has destined him to be, and it is from his aptitudes that we are to infer his destination. You will vainly attempt to train him for things to which he is not atiapted. You will never make an angel of him, for he was not born for that. He neither can be nor ought to be any other thing tlian a man, and each individual, in his turn, becomes what his aptitudes demand and make possible. Attempt, then, to make a Mozart of a deaf mute or of a man who has no ears." We are not called upon, then, as was formerly done, to contend against nature, to treat her as an enemy, and to resist her as a deadly influence. On the contrary, we must have confidence in her, without, however, going so far as to abandon ourselves entirely to her. We must treat her as we would a friend to whom we listen and whom we follow, but to whom it is sometimes necessary to refuse certain concessions. 14. What are we to Understand by Nature? — But if the principle of nature is excellent, we cannot conceal the fact that this term is vague and that it admits of equi- vocation. In reality, what is called nature is after all an ideal which each educator conceives in his own way.^ " What," says Diesterweg in another place, " is conformity to nature? Where shall we find her? How shall we know her? What men have remained faithful to her ? Must we look for them in the virgin forests of America, or in the various tribes of the South Sea, or rather in the civilized nations of Europe ? Where 1 111 ContrUmtions to the Science of Education I have discussed the term " Nature." (P.) 18 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. are the privileged beings who have been so fortunate as never to liave withdrawn from the watch-care of nature ? " To find an answer to this question, there is no other way than to observe the child with impartiality at the age when the conventionalities, the fashions, and the arti- fices of society have not yet spoiled his native simplic- ity. As Rousseau said, " Let us study the man in the child." 15. Restrictions to the Principle op Nature. — But however good our opinion may be of human nature, we should not think of humoring it in everything. Mr. Bain admits that there are evil instincts, such as anger, hatred, antipathy, jealousy, and scorn. Educators should repress and correct them, instead of encouraging and developing them. Moreover, we are not to forget that, when abandoned to herself, nature makes only savages. It is education alone that can rescue us from the animal state and make men of us. As Kant has said, it is education that rids us of our natural savagery. " Man cannot become man, save through education. He is only what education makes him. He who has not been disciplined is a savage." In other terms, it is not enough that education should be inspired by nature and draw her rules from natm-e. Educa- tion is no less an art on this account ; that is, a body of maxims founded on the experiences of successive genera- tions of men, a body of processes brought into conformity with the new elements which progress and civilization have gradually introduced into the primitive nature of man. It is not a question of educating man in general, but the man EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 19 of the nineteenth century, the man of a certain country, a citizen, a Frenchman.^ It is with nature in education as with universal suffrage in politics. Doubtless we must obey the majority, the law of numbers, in our social affairs, just as we must follow nature in education. But the majority itself should be inspired by reason and justice, and so natural education ought to be but the development of the reason which is in man.- 16. Education the Work of Liberty. — Education, then, is not the training of an inert and passive being, but the development of a being that is free and active, whose instruction we are to provoke, and whose spontaneity we are to excite. Education has often been likened to sculpture, its purpose being, so to speak, to chisel human souls according to a highly wrought model. The error in this comparison is forgetting that spirit is not inert matter that can be fash- ioned as we will, that passively submits to whatever we impose on it, as marble or wood to the chisel of the artist. 1 There has been no greater mistake in educational theory than to assume that the education of to-day must be adjusted in accordance with the needs of primitive man or of primitive society. For example, as, historically, the family came before the state, it is assumed that now, when the state has been definitely organized, family duties antedate duties to civil society. But tempora mutantur, et nos cum illis mutamur. Primitively, parenthood i^receded citizen- ship; but now citizenship precedes parenthood. The child must be educated, not for the primeval world of barbarism into which the parents of the race were born, but for the world re-created by human art, into which he himself was born. (P.) 2 Emerson somewhere uses provocation to denote the spiritual act of teaching. Professor Jowett makes Plato (Meno) use the term elicit to express the same fact. The term induce perhaps expresses still more correctly the real nature of instruction as it was conceived by Socrates. (P.) 20 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. Far different is the miud of the child, which ceaselessly reacts upon that of the educator, and mingles its own activity with his. Education is a work in which pupil and teacher co-operate. Often the young co-worker resists by his caprices, by a sort of open hostility ; and oftener by his inertia he disconcerts the plans of his teacher and takes no active part in them. But in an education well administered, the pupil ought to be associated with the teacher. On his part he should strive to reach the end towards which he is being conducted. By his personal efforts he should partici- pate in the education which he receives. " Teacher," said Pestalozzi,^ eloquently, " be assured of the ex- cellence of liberty, and do not allow yourself to be induced, through vanity, to devote yourself to the production of immature fruits. Let your pupil be as free as he can be. Carefully provide everything which allows you to grant him liberty, tranquillity, and unruffled humor. Everything, absolutely everything that you can teach him through the natural consequences of things, do not teach him through language. Allow him in his own person to see, hear, find, fall, get up, and be deceived. No words when the act, the thing itself, is possible. Whatever he can do himself, let him do. Let him always be busy, always active ; and let the time during which you do not disturb him in the least be the greatest part of his childliood. You will find out that nature teaches him much better than men can." 17. Education a Work of Authority. — It was a wise saying of Kant that one of the greatest problems of educa- tion is to reconcile the liberty of the child with the necessity of constraint. It is the same thought which troubled Pestalozzi when he wrote : — "I often find myself embarrassed for having suppressed, in 1 Histoire de Pestalozzi, par Roger de Guimps, p. 57. EDUCATION IN GENEEAL. 21 the education of my children, the tone of the master's authority. Where shall I find the line between liberty and obedience? " There are crises in which the liberty of the child would work harm to him, and even under the most favorable circumstances it is often necessary to oppose the child's will." Education does not abandon nature to herself, but over- sees and directs her, and, if necessary, constrains her. In a general way, education is the work of authority as much as of liberty, and the authority acquired by a master who knows how to make himself loved and obeyed will permit him to employ persuasion oftener than constraint. The more authority he has, the less need he will have to use it. One of the masters of contemporary pedagogy, M. Buisson, has deftly analyzed the conditions of this authority. " The justification of the special authority which is delegated to the teacher in education is that it is the only means of assuring the development of the pupil. In attaining this result, it is evidently necessary, on the one hand, that the teacher really have the power to contribute to this development, and, on the other, that he have the will. "First, he must have the power, and to this end it is above all else necessary that he know what he ought to transmit, and that he have over the pupil the advantage of experience and of a full and serene possession of the knowledge whose elements he is to communicate. " Nor is this all. Even what he thoroughly knows he must still learn to communicate. To teach, to educate, is certainly ah art which has its rules and its secrets There are necessary mental conditions, that is, aptitudes and habits, which allow the teacher, for example, if he is giving instruction, to present his subject with system, and yet with variety ; to make for himself a plan, and to follow it without falling into dogmatic exactness; to know how to make a truth luminous in the minds of children, to insist on the important, and to sacrifice or postpone the acces- sory. If the teacher is giving moral training, his skill should permit him to notice delicately, and to correct still more delicately, 22 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. faults of mind and character; to persuade and to command, as occasion requires ; to encourage, when necessary, and just enough not to develop pride ; finally, to govern according to well-estab- lished principles, and yet with very fine shades of treatment, those little people, so much the more difficult to manage because they are so frail and so powerless to govern themselves. There are also necessary conditions of character, the absence of which would suffice to make the effort to instruct a failure : an even temper, the gift of patience, a bearing which is not exactly that oi ordinary life, but as it were a mingling of gravity and cheerfulness in manner which at once captures the hearts of children ; extreme precaution in shunning the very things which in society and in the world are the most acceptable and the most sought after. There should never be irony, never contradictions and paradoxes, never anything which exalts the teacher at the expense of the pupil, — much indulgence, and no trace of weakness ; nothing ex- citing or brusque ; an inflexible firmness and a paternal gentleness ; inexhaustible simplicity in all tilings; finally, a constant effort, which becomes insensible in the course of time, to come down to his plane, to understand him, to sustain him, to love him. " This last word causes us to pass to the second order of condi- tions. The teacher must have the will to labor for the develop- ment of the child. In fact, it is not so much a question of knowledge as of will. If his heart is really fixed on enriching the patrimony of the young soul which is confided to him, the teacher will infallibly succeed, even though his knowledge is limited. If he loves his pupils, he will resolve, as it were, intuitively, a mass of those practical problems of which his art is composed; for it cannot be too often repeated that edvication is an ai't which is administered rather through experience than through fonnulas. The teacher wiU hold a just medimn between authority and liberty ; he will respect the initiative of the child without demand- ing too much of him or abandoning him too much to himself ; he will gain ascendency in proportion as he is preoccupied the less with himself and the more with liis pupil ; he will perfect himself in order to perfect his pupil." ^ 1 Dictionnaire de Pedagogic, art. " Education." EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 23 18. Power asd Limits of Education. — Fontenelle was certainly wrong when he said : "A good education does not make a good character, nor does a bad education destroy character." On the contrary, we believe that edu- cation plan's an important part even in the formation of the higher virtues and the superior qualities of the mind. It contributes towards making or unmaking characters. But we shall not go so far as to believe, with Locke and Helvetius, that education is omnipotent. Doubtless it may be held that the power of education is ideally infinite ; ^ but as a matter of fact it is limited in its action, either through the natural aptitudes and qualities of the individuals upon whom it acts, or through the time which it has at its dis- posal. We shall not say, then, with Helvetius, that "all men are born equal and with equal aptitudes, and that the differences among men are due to education alone." We must take a just account both of natural qualities and of the acquired qualities which education grafts upon the natural stock. A contemporary writer is also mistaken when he writes that ' ' education has no effect, save upon natures of medi- ocre mould." ^ It is not true that birth is the only struggle endured by great men, and we freely assert that the in- fluence of education reaches its maximum when nature subjects to its beneficent action her richest contingent of powers and faculties. Education can do nothing if it does not come in contact with germs to develop ; and education reaches its highest perfection in souls when these germs are the most numerous and the best nourished by native aliment. If one were disposed to exaggerate the power of education to the point of believing that it can transform everything, 1 Marion, Cours sur la Science de I'Education. 2 Eibot, JDe I'Her^dite, p. 486. 24 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. it would suffice to remind him of the famous example of the education of the Dauphin by Bossuet, the excellence of the teacher and the positive mediocrity of the pupil. But if, on the other hand, he were tempted to doubt the efficacy of education, we would cite in proof of it the education of the Duke of Bourgogne, which, directed by Fenelon, developed almost all the virtues in a soul where nature seemed to have sown the seeds of all the vices. ^ To deny the power of education, it would be necessary to begin by denying the influence of the habits which play so great a part in life, and almost all of which depend on the manner in which we have been brought up. Our mind, like our character, depends in great part on the manner of our education. " Education," says Guizot, " fortifies the weak or inert faculties of childhood. No one is ignorant of the power that exercise and habit have of making the memory more facile and the attention more sustained. Our faculties, instead of deteriorating, grow stronger by use. Examples of the successful application of the will to the perfecting of a given quality are innumerable." ^ 19. Education and School. — It is true that in order to justify the power which we ascribe to education, we must transcend the limits of the school and interpret education in its widest and broadest sense. In fact, there is not only the education properl}' so called, that which proceeds from the direct action of teachers ; but there is the education of the family, and also that of the social environment in which we live. There are what have shrewdly been called the occult coadjutors of education, — climate, race, manners, political institutions, religious beliefs. There is also a 1 See Compayre, op. cit, Chap. VIII. 2 Guizot, Conseils d'un phre sur V education, in Meditations et Etudes. EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 25 personal education, that which one gives himself, and which continues all one's life. But the agency of the school is none the less important on this account, nor the responsibility of the teacher less fearful. Self-education is scarcely more than the continua- tion of the good habits learned at school. As to exterior influences, they are but auxiliaries which can accomplish nothing without the cooperation of a regular education, or enemies against whom we must react through a good train- ing in the schools. What Leibnitz said becomes more and more true, that " the masters of education hold in their hands the future of the world." 20. Education in a Republic. — Under a republican regime, in a great democracy education acquires a new im- portance, because there must then be demanded of the virtue, the wisdom, and the liberty of each citizen, the order and the peace which despotism had before imposed on ignorance and passive obedience. "Republican institutions," says Horace Mann, "furnish as great facilities for wicked men in all departments of wickedness, as phosphorus and lucifer matches f m-nish to the incendiary." ^ But these dangers do not discourage the great American philanthropist, for, in the first place, it is impossible to take a backward step. "The sun can as easily be turned backwards in its course, as one particle of that power which has been conferred upon the millions can be again monopo- lized by the few." But it is also in the name of human dignity and of its rights that it is meet to demand the free development of natural energies, and protest against every system which would assume to stifle them. 1 Horace Mann, op. cit, p. 148. 26 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " In despotisms the divinely formed soul, created to admire through intelligence this glorious universe ; to go forth through knowledge, through sympathy with all human fortunes ; to know its Maker and its immortal destiny, is driven back at every door of egress, or darkened at every window where light could enter, and is chained to the vassal spot which gave it birth, where the very earth, as well as its inhabitant, is blasted by the common curse of bondage. In Oriental and African despotisms, the mind of the millions grows only as the ti'ees of a noble forest could grow in the rocky depths of a cavern, without strength or beauty or healing balm, in impurity and darkness, fed by poisonous exhala- tions from stagnant pools, all upward and outward expansion introverted by solid barriers, and forced back into unsightly forms. Thus it has always fared with the faculties of the human soul when concerned in despotism. They have dwelt in intellectual, denser than subterranean, darkness. Their most tender, sweet, and hallowed emotions have been choked and blighted. The pure and sacred effusions of the heart have been converted into hatred of the good and idolatry of the base, for want of the light and the air of true freedom and instruction ; the world can suffer no loss equal to that spiritual loss which is occasioned by attempt- ing to destroy, instead of regulating the energies of the mind." ^ 21. Conclusion. — Education, then, ought to be at once an excitation and a restraint. Let us not fear to affran- chise, to emancipate minds, if we are wise enough at the same time to discover the secret of teaching them modera- tion and self-government, if through sufficient culture we help them to find within themselves the restraint necessary to reform their passions and evil instincts. This is why character building is the supreme end of education. After all, it is according to our character that we act, and it is of much more consequence that we act well than that we think well. It is true that our character depends preeminently upon our sentiments and our thoughts ; 1 Horace Mann, op. cit, pp. 144, 145. EDUCATION IN GENERAL. 27 or, in other terms, that moral education depends in part upon intellectual education. But moral education is none the less the final term of our efforts. And to attain this end it is evidently not sufficient to possess wisdom, instruction; there must be joined to these moral qualities the virtues of the heart and the will. It has been said that the effort of education is to form men. To this end let teachers begin by being men themselves. "Whoever undertakes the education of another should begin by completing his own. Emile Souvestre has exemplified this truth as follows : A young father, in anticipation of the birth of a child, surrounds himself with books on education. But the read- ing of these works only increases his uncertainties. Finally, he begins to reflect, and, considering the boundless influence of the father and mother, upon the tablet which he had prepared for taking notes, below the title, Educational Precepts, he wrote merely these words : to become better" ^ 1 Chauvet, L'Education, Paris, 1868, p. 73. CHAPTER II. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 22, A Sound Mind in a Sound Body. — "A sound mind in a sound body, — tliis," says Locke, "is the sliort but complete definition of happiness in this world." Such, therefore, ought to be the double purpose of education. Physical education should not be separated from intellectual and moral education. And this for two reasons : first, be- cause bodily health and strength are desirable and good in themselves, because they make a part of that complete and perfect life which is the will of nature and the dream of education ; and then because the development of the body is one of the conditions, one of the means, of the develop- ment of the soul, — because the higher life of the spirit is not possible, except it have for a support a robust and healthy physical life. 23. Physical Education for the Good of the Body. — There have been times when men could believe that the ideal was to despise the body, and even to humiliate it and mortify it, that this lower element of our being was entitled to no respect, to no care, and that human perfection was in proportion to the diminution and the decay of the material forces. Mysticism proposed, as the unique purpose of life, spiritual perfection ; and asceticism, the practical applica- tion of the principles of mysticism, took up arms against the body, to reduce it to terms by fasting, by tortures, by 28 PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 29 privations of every description, — if possible, to annihilate it, as the source of all sin and of all evil. We of to-day have recovered from these chimeras. We regard man as a whole which is not to be mutilated in any of its parts. Simply because they are inferior in dignity to the spiritual forces, the energies of the physical organism none the less deserve to be respected and developed. " As remarks a suggestive writer," says Herbert Spencer, " the first requisite to success in life is 'to be a good animal ' ; and to be a nation of good animals is the first condition of national prosperity. Not only is it that the event of a war often turns on the strength and hardiness of soldiers ; but it is that the contests of commerce are in part determined by tlie bodily endurance of producers." ^ Moreover, it is not simply a question of positive and practical interest ; the preservation of health is one of our duties. Every conscious infraction of the laws of hygiene is a culpable act, and, as Herbert Spencer has justly observed, every prejudice voluntarily done to health is a physical sin. 24. Physical Education for the Sake of the Mind. — A thing not less positive is that there is a solidarity of interest between mind and body. As the physical and the moral are, so to speak, the under and the upper textures of the same fabric, it would be folly to suppose that we could with impunity derange the under without by the same act compromising the upper. The Greeks understood this, and they associated the body and the mind in one harmonious education, in order to make man at once "beautiful and good." It was b}' them that Montaigne was inspired when he wrote his admirable chapter on the "Training of Children." 1 Spencer, Education, p. 222. 30 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " It is not enough to toughen the mind of the child ; his muscles must be toughened also. The mind is too hard driven if it is not assisted ; it has too much to do to fill two offices alone. I know how much mine, so prone to le preoccupied with itself, suffers from being tied to a body so delicate and sensitive ; and in my reading I often notice that in their accounts my authors adduce as examples of magnanimity and courage, what ought the rather to be attributed to thickness of skin and hardness of bone." And further on : — " It is not a soul, nor yet a body, which we are educating, but a man, and we must not divide him. And, as Plato says, we must not train one of them without the other, but we must drive them abreast like a span of horses harnessed to the same shaft." The moral faculties do not freely expand, except when the body is in full health ; and besides, when they have once been developed, they do not come into free exercise unless they can avail themselves of firm and agile members. A good bodily constitution ' ' renders the operations of the mind easy and sure ; " and at the same time that it con- tributes towards forming the mind, it is a necessary condi- tion for the outward manifestation of spirit, and prevents the mind from falling back upon itself, lost in futile con- templations. I well know that we sometimes meet with intelligences of the first order, and with strong and courageous wills, united to weak and sickly bodies. A man whose physical life is but a perpetual discomfort may be distinguished from all others by the energy of his mind and the eleva- tion of his heart. The example of Pascal, the invalid and the man of genius, occurs to the mind of every one. It may really happen in certain cases, by a mysterious reaction, that bodily sufferings may refine and stimulate the moral faculties. In such cases, pain is the principal agent in this unusual progress of the intelligence. But these exceptions PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 31 prove nothing as against the general law. With good health, Pascal might have lived longer, and probably would have lost nothing of his genius. According to the expres- sion which he himself used, it will not do to despise the hete, for sooner or later it will have its revenge. It had its vengeance on Pascal by killing him. " Physical perfection serves to assure moral perfection. There is nothing more tyrannical than an enfeebled organism. Nothing sooner paralyzes the free activity of the reason, the flight of the imagination, and the exercise of reflection; nothing sooner dries up all the sources of thought than a sickly body whose functions languish, and for which every effort is a cause of suffering. Then have no scruples ; asd if you would form a soul which is to have ample develoi^ment, a man of generous and inti-epid will, a work- man capable of great undertakings and arduous labors, first, and above all, secure a vigorous organism, of powerful resistance and muscles of steel." ^ 25. Physical Education as a Preparation for pro- fessional Education. — Physical education, like intellec- tual and moral education, does not consist merely in a disinterested culture of natural powers, but tends towards a practical end ; it ought to be a preparation for life, and, by reason of its very nature, a preparation for professional education, or at least for bodily skill. It is hardly possible to introduce into the education of all men what Locke and Rousseau desired, the apprenticeship to a trade ; but, nevertheless, under all circumstances it is well to know how to use one's hands and one's limbs. "One of the highest compliments we can pay a man," says Saint-Marc Girardin, " is to say that he knows how to surmount difficulties, not through artful discourse or through ingenious con- versation, but, if necessary, through manual dexterity also; to 1 F. Marion, Cours sur la Science de V Education. 32 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. come off conqueror, not merely in great things, but in small ; not to be continually in need of using the arms of others in order to lengthen his own, and to be embarrassed neither by his own body nor by what it has to carry ; but that he is versatile and active, that he is neither awkward nor effeminate, — in a word, that he can live without having a bell within reach, and a servant within sound of the bell." ^ It is especially in the common school, by reason of the special destination of those who attend it, that physical education ought to take a practical direction, and thus pre- pare boys for the future occupations of the laborer and the soldier, and girls for the duties of the household and for the occupations peculiar to women. On this point, the official programme of French instruc- tion expresses itself as follows : — " The purpose of physical education is not merely to fortify the body and strengthen the constitution of the child, by placing him in the most favorable hygienic conditions ; but it should also give him, at an early hour, qualities of deftness and agility, that manual dexterity and that promptness and certainty of movement which, valuable for every one, are more particularly necessary for pupils in the common school, the most of whom are destined for manual occupations." '^ 26. Principles of Physical Education. — It is in the education of the body that the greatest credit seems to have been given the notion that nature should have her own way, that she should be intrusted exclusively with the care of developing the organs and regulating their functions. It were a grave error thus to hand over the health and life of the child to accidents and hazards of every species. Here, as everywhere, we must aid nature, and to aid her we must know her. 1 Saint-Marc Girardin, J. J. Eousseau, Tome II. p. 112. 2 rrogrammes annexed to the official order of July 27, 1882. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 33 To be wholly rational, physical education should be based on a profound knowledge of the different sciences which treat of the human body. H^'giene bases its practical rules upon the theories of physiology ; gymnastics is founded upon the elementary principles of anatomy ; and, in general, physical education applies the great laws of the science of the body, just as intellectual and moral education applies the great laws of the science to the soul. 27. Physiology of the Child. — Let us add that for the body, as well as for the soul, there is an infancy — that is to say, a peculiar state of growth — which precedes maturity. It is not, then, merely the general physiology and anatomy of man that the educator is bound to consult, but, in order to be really fit to fulfil his task, he should himself construct, as a rule for his procedure, a real physi- ology of the child. Like the psychology of the child, his pliysiology is a histoiy which accompanies little by little the evolution of the body, the successive formation of its organs, and the organization of the different parts of the nervous system. Let us not forget that the child is not a ready-made being, a finished product, but a weak and fragile creature, " whose muscles, nerves, and organs are in the milk, so to speak," and develop but gradually, owing to a slow but incessant growth. 28. Importance op Physiological Conceptions. — It is doubtless to parents in particular that falls the obligation to know enough of the laws of life not to abandon the edu- cation of their children to the quackery of nurses and to blind and irrational modes of treatment. In one of his eloquent pages Mr. Herbert Spencer has reminded them of their duties on this point. 34 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " To tens of thousands who are killed, add hundreds of thou- sands that survive with feeble constitutions and millions that grow up with constitutions not so strong as they should be, and you will have some idea of the curse inflicted on their offspring by parents ignorant of the laws of life. Do but consider for a moment that the regimen to which children are subject is hourly -telling upon them to their life-long injury or benefit, and that there are twenty ways of going wrong to one way of going right, and you will get some idea of the enormous mischief that is almost everywhere inflicted by the thoiightless, haphazard system in com- mon use. Is it decided that a boy shall be clothed in some flimsy short dress, and be allowed to go playing about with his limbs reddened by cold? The decision will tell on his whole future existence, either in illness or in stunted growth, or in deficient energy, or in maturity less vigorous than it ought to have been, and consequent hindrances to success and happiness. Are children doomed to a monotonous dietary, or a dietary deficient in nutri- tiveness? Their ultimate physical power, and their efficiency as men and women, will inevitably be more or less diminished by it. Are they forbidden vociferous play, or (being too ill-clothed to bear exposure) are they left indoors in cold weather ? They are certain to fall below that measure of health and strength to which they would else have attained." ^ But though the responsibility in this matter rests chiefly upon parents, teachers also, if they have neglected to in- form themselves of the laws of the physical life, if they set them at defiance by unreasonable commands or by ill-timed prohibitions, — teachers also may exercise a fatal influence upon the health and vitality of children. Then let them take a serious view of their responsibilities, and study with care anatomy and physiology as presented in the normal schools. Let them supplement these studies by their personal observations upon the children of their schools ; let them take account of their physical aptitudes, 1 Spencer, Education, pp. 56, 57. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 35 of their differences in temperament, and of the natural weakness or strength of their constitution. Thus prepared in the lessons which they give in gymnastics, in their pre- cautions and advice in matters of hygiene, they will not be the mere routine adherents to a programme, but will the better execute the orders whose meaning and application they comprehend. They will put a liberal interpretation upon the dead letter of the law ; through their personal experience, and through their enlightened interest in the particular temperament of each child, they will make this letter a living thing. 29. Positive and Negative Education of the Body. — Granting everything that can be claimed for the natural vigor of the child's constitution and of his spontaneous development, there still remains a vast field of activity open to the previsions of the educator. On the one hand, the life of the child must be shielded from everything which may be the cause of disturbance, dissipation, and debility, of whatever would have a ten- dency to impair bodily health, such as excessive brain labor. Here, properly speaking, is the domain of negative physical education, that which consists in conserving and protecting the natural forces, and which is almost all summed up in prohibitions, in the warnings pronounced by hygiene. On the other hand, it is necessary to supplement and stimulate the work of nature, to develop and fortify the physical powers ; and this deliberate intervention becomes more and more necessary, in proportion as the intensive culture of the intellect is carried to excess, and to the abuses of intemperate study and overcrowded programmes. This will be the purpose of a positive physical education, of an education which will comprise all the exercises and all the sports of childhood, all the practices recommended 36 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. by hygiene, and all the movements which constitute gym- nastics. Hygiene and gymnastics, these are the two elements of physical education, and both are e([ually necessary. The first is, in some sort, a good method of conduct, a kind of ethics for the body ; the other is to physical activity what study is to intellectual activity, a wholesome and strength- ening exercise. Both conspire to endow the body with health and vigor ; but hygiene has especial reference to health, and gymnastics to vigor. 30. .School Hygiene. — Volumes have been written upon hygiene, and we do not propose to recite even the essential things which might be said on such a subject, either from the point of view of school hygiene or of the hygiene of children and pupils. On this point we refer our readers to special treatises.^ Hygiene, according to Rousseau, is not so much " a science as a virtue ; " that is, it consists above all in abstain- ing from whatever is bad, in shunning all excesses, and in being temperate in all things. Temperance is the half of hygiene. The child whose diet is plain, whose life is simple, who is spared every occasion for overtaxing his powers, who knows nothing of indigestion, of violent pleas- ures and excessive fatigues, — such a child has already accomplished much in the way of healthful living. 1 See particularly Lecons ele'mentairen d'hygiene, by Dr. George (Paris: Delalain) ; l' Hygiene et V Education dans les internats, by Eiant ; L' Instruction of July 28, 1882 ; the article Hygiene, of Dr. E. Pe'caut, in the Bictionnaire de pe'dagogie ; lastly, the Rapports of the Commission on School Hygiene, Paris, 1884. The English reader is referred to the following books : Charles Kingsley, Health and Education ; Archibald Maclaren, A Sijsteiu of Physical Education; D. F. Lincoln, School and Industrial Hygiene. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 37 However, hygiene permits a certain number of positive injunctions which relate either to the general cleanliness of the body, to diet, or to clothing. The common principle of all these injunctions ought to be not to yield too much to the inclinations of nature, nor yet to interfere with her too much. 31. The Principle op Physical Hardening. — Such, however, is not the opinion of a certain number of educators who, like Locke for example, give a much greater extension to the principle of physical hardening, and who, under the pretext of not spoiling nature by an excess of mildness and complacency, end by refusing her the most legitimate grati- fications. It is doubtless well to inure children to hard- ships, not to enervate them, but to bring them up in country fashion. However, we should always take into account the diversity of temperaments. " If your son is very robust," said Madame de Sevigne shrewdly, "a rude education is good; but if he is delicate, I think that in your attempts to make him robust you would kill him." And even the most robust constitutions cannot be sub- jected to all trials. Locke is wrong when he forbids warm clothing in winter. Herbert Spencer is wiser on this point, when, in the clothing of children, he would take account of the natural sensations of heat and cold. " The common notion about ' hardening,' " he says, " is a griev- ous delusion. Children are not unfrequently ' hardened ' out of the world." It is chimerical to suppose that by forced modes of pro- cedure and by habits early acquired, we can accomplish everything through the plasticity of the physical organs. There are things contrar}' to our physical constitution, to which the organism cannot become accustomed. This is 38 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. what Goldsmith tried to illustrate when he related this anecdote : " One day Peter the Great took it into his head that it would be best for all sailors to form the habit of drinking salt water. He immediately promulgated an order that all naval cadets should henceforth drink only sea-water. The boys all died, and there the experiment stopped." Then let us be wise enough to give sufficient place to the requirements of nature, and not revert to the old ascetic tendencies which led to dangerous deprivations and hard- ships ; but let us be equally on our guard against paying homage to the optimism, as unwise as it is seductive, of those who, like Herbert Spencer, assert that it is necessary in everything to revere the sacred order of nature and satisfy all the desires of the cliild, as for example his immoderate appetite for sweetmeats. 32. Cleanliness. — Cleanliness is a virtue, according to Volney ; a half virtue, according to others. What admits of no doubt is that the opposite of cleanliness is a great fault, since it compromises the dignity of the human person by giving an offensive appearance to the body. " There is a closer relation than we think," said Madame Pape- Carpantier, " between physical cleanliness and moral purity." But cleanliness is valuable in itself, as a hygienic rule, as an element of health, and as a preventive of contagions which give rise to diseases, light or severe. Hence the importance of giving attention to cleanliness. It rests chiefly with the family to insist on its observance ; but by his advice, by his example, and also by the attention which he gives to the subject, the teacher can do much to- wards giving the child habits of cleanliness. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 39 33. Food and Clothing. — Without saying, with Feuer- bach, that "man is what he eats," and without accepting the absohite assertion of Herbert Spencer, that ' ' the well- fed races have been the energetic and dominant races," we cannot accord too much importance to alimentation, to the quality and the quantity of food. Mr. Spencer declares that there are too many rules in the nursery, just as there are too many in the state, and tliat one of the greatest evils resulting from this state of things is that children are too much restricted in their diet. "The food of children," he says, "should be highly nutri- tive ; it should be varied at each meal ; and it should be abundant."^ The child, then, should eat till his hunger is satisfied. Eating to excess is the vice of adults rather than of children. Indigestion, with children, is almost always brought on by a reaction against privations, against a prolonged fast. As to garments, they should be full and loose, so that the body shall feel at ease in them, and that nothing shall interfere with the functions of the organism. " Hygienists condemn the premature use of the corset for girls, and at all times the tunic for boys." ^ Locke, with his usual austerity, required the child to play bareheaded, and never to wear warm clothing ; he even favored the idea of requiring him to wear the same garments winter and summer. Mr. Spencer, on the contrary, finds that it is folly to clothe children in thin garments. The French criticise the English custom of allowing children to go bare-legged and thinly dressed ; while the English blame the French for the silly things invented by the Petit Courrier des dames, which recommends garments that 1 Education, p. 224. 2 See Fonssagrives, Education physique des gargons, p. 57. 40 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. are either inconveuicut or iusafficient.^ Mr. Spencer con- cludes thut if clotliing should not l)e so heavy as to produce an uncomfortable warmth, it ought always to be warm enough to prevent all feeling of cold. 34. Other Hygienic Requirements. — We are far from having enumerated all the precepts of hygiene ; there are others bearing on sleep, on work, on recreations, and upon punishments. Hygiene particularly recommends physical activity as a means of counterbalancing cerebral toil and intellectual fatigue. Activity is one of the conditions of health. We are nourished, not by what we eat, but by what we digest, as a physician has told us ; and Trousseau adds, " We digest with our limbs as well as with our stomach." But at this point hygiene is almost confounded with gym- nastics, of which we now proceed to speak. 35. Gymnastics. — Generally too much neglected in France, but holding a prominent place in Switzerland and Germany, gymnastics begins to affect the habits of our schools.'^ French legislation has ordained it, and official manuals have codified its requirements.^ 1 See Spencer, Education, p. 250. 2 The law of March 15, 1850, placed the teaching of gymnastics among the optional studies of primary instruction. The decree of Marcli 24, 1851, included it among the obligatory studies of the normal schools. The decree of March 13, 1854, introduced it into the lycees. A decree of 1869 (Feb. 3) organized it in the lyce'es and colleges, in the normal schools, and in the jirimary schools. Numerous circulars published since that pei'iod have given precise instructions and detailed precepts. Finally, the law of January 27, 1880, makes obligatory the teaching of gymnastics "in all the institutions of public instruction for boys;" and the decree of July 27, 1881, says expressly that "each day, or at least every other day, gymnastics shall occupy a recitation hour dur- ing the course of the afternoon." 8 See the Manual of Captain Yergnes. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 4l This subject is being gradually orgauized, and if it does not always meet with competent instructors, it at least responds everywhere to the taste of pupils. But let us be on our guard lest this taste become an infatuation. When the educator has made many efforts to introduce a new subject into education, and has at last been successful, his part changes ; most often he has to repress excesses of zeal, and to maintain within just limits that very l)ranch of instruction which he had the greatest difficulty in introducing. All the sciences, all the arts, whatever they may be, are in their very nature encroaching, once the doors of the school have been opened to them. They are but means, but they are disposed to make them- selves accepted as ends. In the French colleges the study of Latin, which should be but one of the modes of intel- lectual culture through the use of a foreign language, has become the supreme end of education, and there is no longer any other thought than to make latinists.^ Let it not be so with gymnastics, whose purpose is not to make gymnasts, prodigies of strength and agility, but simply to give power and suppleness to the muscles ; to govern and facilitate the play of the bodily movements ; to assure to laborers vigor- ous limbs, good corporeal tools ; to prepare for all men 1 It is worthy of note, in passing, that teachers often misconceive the destination of their pupils. In particular this mistake is made by specialists, as in the classics and the sciences, who proceed on the hypothesis that all their pupils are to become specialists, — philolo- gists or naturalists. In such cases the presumption is set up that the sciences must be rediscovered. The story of Agassiz and the student with the fish, so often quoted to illustrate the true method of teaching science, does not represent the average pupil, who needs to learn science chiefly for, the same reason that he learns history, for the sake of general information. This subject is discussed at some length in Contributions to the Science of Education, Chap. III. (P) 42 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. the elements of a robust health aud a long life ; and, finally, to develope the physical energies, just as stud}' developes the moral energies. Doubtless gymnastics has need of apparatus and rigging, and for the moment this is one of the difficulties which retard its introduction into village schools ; Ijut let it be as far as possible independent of these aids, or at least let it not abuse them. Let there be no machines that are too complicated, no contrivances that are too scientific. The report of the special commission appointed in 1868 had the prudence to condemn ' ' exercises which demand too great an expenditure of strength, and which might be the cause of accidents." So let us proscribe all the nice- ties, all the refinements, which would end in transforming the lesson in gymnastics into a training of jugglers or of adepts in feats of strength, — in a word, all the exercises which do not have the single purpose of giving the child a body fit for action and able to resist fatigue. 3G. Other Results of Gymnastics. — But gymnastics has not physical development solely in view. A shrewd observer of children. Mademoiselle Chalamet, has remarked that gymnastics also proposes, " (1) to disci- pline the child ; and (2) to afford him repose from intellec- tual labor, and, by this very means, to make the resumption of it more eas}' and more profitable."-^ Gymnastics, in fact, by regulating the movements of the body, by imposing regular and rhythmical evolutions, by requiring exact movements, executed with precision and promptness, — gymnastics communicates habits of order and decision, whose effect survives the exercises which have produced them, and which, by a sort of inner contagion, are even transmitted to the soul. This result would cer- 1 Mademoiselle Chalamet, L'Ecole maternelle, p. 275. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. . 43 tainl}' be attained if the evolutions of pupils were to be accompanied by songs, as recommended by Amoras, who introduced gymnastics into France.^ On the other hand, gymnastics does not labor merely for the future by enlarging and strengthening tlie chest, by giving suppleness to the limbs, and by contributing to the health of the child. It also acts immediately upon the state of the body, whose forces it renews, and upon the nervous system, which it tempers ; it has a happy effect upon studies, because it re-establishes the equilibrium in the organism, and at the same time gives the mind more vigor and elasticity. Gymnastics, like play, takes the child weary, enervated by study and cerebral effort, and restores him to intellectual labor refreshed and active. But it will do this on one condition, that we never pass the limit beyond which fatigue would begin. An excessive exercise of the body makes the mind inert, while moderate exercise reanimates and refreshes it. Especially in our day, when an over-crowded programme subjects the child to severe intellectual efforts, when " a system of high-pressure educa* tion," as Mr. Spencer says, requires excessive application, an alternation of physical and mental exercises becomes more and more necessary in order to re-establish and renew without cessation the forces which the abuse of mental labor is not slow to exhaust. 37. MiLiTAKY Gymnastics. — It is not only in our day, as one might suppose, that men have thought of exercising children in the handling of arms. 1 In the Rapport of Dr. Javal, Sur I'Hygiene des e'coles primaires (Paris: 1884), we find the following precept: Children must be pre- vented from singing during violent gymnastic exercises and while running. But evidently this prohibition does not apply to elementary exercises, to rounds, and to evolutions. 44 THifORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " I saw yesterday," wrote Madame de Sevigiie, " a little boy whom I found to be a fine fellow. He is seven years old, and his father has taught him to handle the musket and the pike. It is the finest thing in the world. You would love that little child. This exercise limbers his body and nuxkes him deliberate, dex- terous, and resolute. To my mind, this is better than a dancingr master." It is needless to insist on the utility of military gymnas- tics, which is- a preparation for the duties of citizenship and an apprenticeship in the habits of a soldier, at the same time that it offers most of the advantages which can be obtained from the practice of ordinary gymnastics. It is sufficient to call to mind the place which military drill has long held in the schools of Germany. 38. Gymnastics for Girls. — We must not conclude from the fact that the law of 1880 is content with imposing upon boys the obligation to receive instruction in gymnastics, that such instruction is not adapted to girls. •' Women," said Monsieur Laisne, " have need of gymnastics even more than men ; for in their case the obstacles whicli civilized life opposes to physical development are much more nmnerous and even much more fatal." ^ Herbert Spencer vigorously combats the prejudice which excludes girls from physical exercises. He conceives for them an education as boisterous and as active as that of their brothers. He even urges them to violent sports and to long walks, to whatever can produce in them a robust physical development. He would have them run like mad- caps and grow up amid gambols and rude sports. There is no fear, he adds, that this will afterwards affect the delicacy and grace of their manners. 1 Laisne, Gymnastique j)ratique, Preface, p. 13. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 45 " If the sportive activity allowed to boj's does not prevent them from growing up into gentlemen, why should a like sportive activity allowed to girls prevent them from growing up into ladies? Rough as may have been their accustomed playground frolics, youths who have left school do not indulge in leapfrog in the street or marbles in the drawing-room." ^ Doubtless it is unnecessary to subject the two sexes to the same rc'gime. Plato and some utopists of the French Revolution are the only ones who could dream, in their passion for equality, of an education absolutely the same, in which girls should be dressed like boys, and, like them, should mount horse and bear arms. No ; nature requires that we take into account the difference which she has established in ph3'sical constitution as in social destination. There should be special programmes and distinct manuals of gymnastics for the two sexes. Certainly there should not be required of women the prolonged running, the violent leaps, and the feats of strength, — any of those exercises, in a word, — which are befitting only to the muscular strength of men. We must ever keep in mind with what a delicate and frail being we have to do. But with these reservations, it is safe to say that, at least in towns, young women need to be subjected to gymnastic discipline. " The boy always finds a means of escaping somewhat from the influence of bad lodging and an unwholesome mode of life. lie is out of doors, walks the streets, idles about town, lives much in the open air. But the girl, on the contrary, is sedentary, remains within doors, escapes no restraint. The direct consequence of this is a greater debility, which can be repaired only by more energetic and more assiduous care. What physician in the poorer quarters of cities has not been painfully struck by that muscular feebleness, by that nervous debility, and by that impoverishment 1 Education, p. 225. 46 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. of the blood which chai-acterize the young women of the lower classes, and make of them, at a late period, the victims of grave nervous disorders, or at least women rarely capable of sustaining with impunity the fatigues of maternity ? " ^ 39. Official Programmes. — It has not been thonglit sufficient to recommend gymnastic exercises, or even to impose them by law ; the programme of this new instruction has recently been prepared. Already, in 1872, in the schools of Paris, instruction in gymnastics had been organ- ized according to a regular plan. "The lessons, based on the elementary principles of general anatomy, comprise exercises in walking, simple movements, move- ments combined with the xylofer,^ the handling of dumb-bells, jumping, and, for the oldest pupils, parallel bars and the ladder. All the movements are accompanied by an easy and pleasing song, which helps to strengthen the muscles of the respiratory organs." ^ We now present the text of the official programme estab- lished in 1882: — Infakt Class. — Plays, rounds, evolutions, rhythmic move- ments, the little games of Madame Pape-Carpantier. Graduated exercises. Elementary Course. — Preparatory exercises, movements and flexions of the arms and legs. Use of the dumb-bells and bar. Cadenced running. Evolutions. Intermediate Course. — Continuation of the exercises in the flexion and extension of the arms and legs. Practice with dumb- bells. Exercises with the bar, rings, ladder, knotted cord, sus- pended bars, fixed horizontal beam, the pole, the trapeze. Evolu- tions. 1 Revue pedagogique, Nov. 25, 1882, article by M. E. Pe'caut. 2 An instrument recommended by Dr. Tissot in 1870, constructed by Laisne in 1873, whose purpose is to expand and develop the chests of children. 3 M. Greard, L'Enseignenient primaire a Paris, p. 113. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 47 Higher Couuse. — Continuation of the same exercises. Ex- ercises in equilibrium upon one foot. Arm movements, combined with walking. Exercises two and two with the bar. Races, jumping. Cane exercise (for boys). 40. Play and Gymnastics. — As it has been justly said, gymnastics, understood as a science of movements, as a systematic and exact art of pln'sical exercises, — gymnas- tics, when introduced into the school, is but an additional lesson there. Now it is particularly of physical activity that it is true to say that, in order to attain its purpose, it ought to be agreeable, to please the chikl, to conform to his tastes. If pleasure does not attend them, physical exercises will not Itave the salutary effect that is expected of them. From this point of view, the monotonous, artifi- cial, and unnatural movements of gymnastics are certainly not worth the free and joyous effort that comes from activity in play. " The truth is," says Mr. Spencer, " that happiness is the most powerful of tonics. By accelerating the circulation of the blood, it facilitates the performance of every function, and so tends alike to increase health when it exists, and to restore it when it has been lost. Hence the essential superiority of play to gymnastics." ^ In pursuing his formal strictures against gymnastics, which "must be radically defective as not supplying these agreeable mental stimuli," the English educator remarks that it has still another fault ; the prescribed movements which it imposes, necessarily less diversified than the move- ments which result from free exercises, develop but a part of the muscular system, exercise only particular organs, and consequently do not produce an equal distribution of activity among all parts of the body. 1 Education, pp. 257, 258. 48 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. The legitimate prefereuce whicli Mr. Spencer accords to play, to the spontaneous activity of the child, almost neces- sarily leads him to the extreme and false conclusion that gymnastics is a bad thing, and that it can be accepted at best only as a make-shift, — " formal exercises of the limbs are better than nothing." We are far from sharing this opinion, and it seems to us that Laisnc was more just in his appreciation when he wrote : " Ordmary sports, with their inconveniences, disordered and unsystematic, cannot replace gymnastics ; but, conversely, gym- nastics, regular and systematic as it is, ought not to supersede play where all children abandon themselves to the frolics of their 41. Necessity op Play. — This is not the place to dis- cuss exhaustively the question of sports. In fact, sports do not affect physical education alone ; they have intimate relations with the culture of the imagination and with aesthetic education, and we shall have occasion to return to the subject. But it is well to state before going further how important it is, from a sanitary point of view, that the child should play, and how much it were to be regretted should the habit of playiug disappear from our schools, as it tends, alas ! to disappear from social life. " Play in the open air, which invites to jump, to run without interruption, to shout at the top of the voice, which causes the blood to circulate vigorously, and gives color to the cheeks, — this is the agent of all others for physical development. The English and the Americans well know this, and with them play is a national institution." The French, on the contrary, play less and less, and the fault is due in part to the habits contracted in the colleges, PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 49 and also in part to the teachers, who, in general, have disparaged sports too much, — "those nothings which are everything in the life of a child." Froebel is almost the only one who has given that attention to the subject which it merits. " We should not consider play," he says, " as a frivolous thing ; on the contrary, it is a thing of profound signification By means of play the child expands in joy as the flower expands when it proceeds from the bud ; for joy is the soul of aU the actions of that age." 42. Physical Exercises in England. — Physical educa- tion still counts so many adverse critics among the French that it is not useless to invoke the example of foreign nations. No one will deny that the Anglo-Saxon race stands in the front rank among the human races, and it owes its superiority in part to its taste for physical exer- cises. On this point let us quote the testimony of an acute observer, M. Taine.^ " There are gentlemen in England," he says, " whose ambition and training are those of a Greek athlete. They restrict them- selves to a particular diet, abstaining from every excess in food and drink. They develop their muscles and subject themselves to a rational system of training " Sports hold the first place, said an Eton master, and books the second. A boy stakes his reputation on being a good athlete. He spends three, four, five hours a day in boisterous and violent exercise. He will splash about for hours in ploughed fields and miry meadows, falling into the mud, losing his shoes, and pulling himself out as best he can The university continues the school, and in it there reigns an active, popular, almost universal taste for athletic exercises. Playing at cricket, rowing, sailing, 1 M. Taine, Notes sur I'Engleterre, Paris, 1872, Chap. IV., L'Educm- tion. 50 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. training dogs to hunt rats, fishing, hunting, riding on horseback, coaching, swimming, boxing, fencing, and recently amateur sol- diering, — these are the most interesting occupations for the young men Doubtless muscular training carried to such an extent entails some rudeness in manners ; but, by way of com- pensation, this athletic and gymnastic discipline has this dovible advantage, that it chills the senses and pacifies the imagination. Moreover, when the moral and mental life is afterwards developed, the soul finds, to support it, a more healthy and a more substan- tial body." We do not desire, any more than M. Taine does, to disguise the faults which this extreme attention to the physical life, this mania for muscularity, is likely to en- gender. Plato, two thousand years ago, drew the portrait, but little flattering, of the man who trains only his body, "who lives in ignorance and awkwardness, with no sym- metry and no grace." ^ English education must often end in producing coarse natures, dolts ; but, on the other hand, it hardens the body and tempers character. 43. Conclusion. — It is only till lately that the theory and the practice of education have given to physical exer- cises their proper place ; and already, in presence of the progress, still uncertain, of gymnastics, some minds have taken the alarm. It is to be feared, some say, that the new generations may be ' ' trained to passive obedience through the development of physical exercises." It is even said that education, thus conducted, lowers man towards the level of the beast. ^ This is surely misplaced zeal to hurl anathemas against a thing the most innocent and the most legitimate in the world, the development of physical power. If it were necessary to choose between mind and 1 Republic, 411. 2 See the Lent Sermon of the Bishop of Versailles, 1885. PHYSICAL EDUCATION. 51 gymnastics, we would freely exclaim, Long live mind ! Down with gymnastics ! But surely there is no need of such a choice. The mind can derive only good from a moderate exercise of the body. As to saying that the habit of passive obedience will be the result of this new taste for physical discipline, it is to forget that well-worn truth that a man is so much the more free, so much the more independent, as he has more power at his disposal. We have never observed that in the religious orders, where passive obedience is most strongly recommended, and where the maxim perinde ac cadaver has reigned, much attention has been given to physical development. In such cases asceticism has flourished, not gymnastics. CHAPTEE III. INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. — GENERAL PRINCIPLES. 44. Is THERE AN INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION? It iS Still the general usage to reserve the word education to designate the formation of morals and character. The precise object of education proper, in distinction from instruction, is the culture of the will and the heart, as opposed to that of the intelligence.^ There is, however, an intellectual education, but it is something more than instruction, though it includes it and depends in great part upon it. "The mind," said Locke, "is the principal part of human nature, and education ought to bear chiefly upon what is within man." It cannot be doubted, in fact, that the intelligence and the interior faculties are, still more than the physical faculties, the object of education, either by rea- son of the dignity of thought, — ' ' for it is from this source that we must gain the power to rise," — or because, nature and instinct playing a less important part in mental develop- ment, the intervention of the educator is here particularly necessary. 45. Relation of Intellectual Education to Physical AND Moral Education. — Intellectual education is by no 1 H. Marion, Lecons de psychologie, p. 49. The meaning of this term is not so restricted by English writers, who apply it in the same sense to body, mind, and character ; though the essential idea in each case is that of discipline or formation, rather than of insti'uctiou or information. (P.) 52 INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 53 means an isolated thing, separated from all the rest. On the contrary, it is but a fragment of the general education of man, having intimate relations with physical education, and also with moral education. When science shall have succeeded in solving the ques- tion, still obscure, of the relations between the physical and the moral, between brain and thought, the influence of the education of the body upon the education of the mind will become perfectly apparent. But even now, it is sufficient to have observed children to be convinced that their intellectual evolution corresponds to their state of health, to the nature of their temperament, to their strength, or to their weakness of body. And, on the other hand, notwithstanding the clamorous assertions of Herbert Spencer, with respect to the impotency of instruction and its moral sterility, it is evident that the education of the mind is a preparation for that of the heart and the character, and that there is an element of truth in the old Socratic maxim, "Knowledge and vu-tue are one."^ 46. Definition of Intellectual Education. — Every- thing which contributes to making the mind active, to developing, strengthening, and training it, and also to en- lightening and ornamenting it, forms a part of intellec- tual education. But there is an important distinction to be made : it is one thing to build a house, and another thing to furnish it." And so, with respect to the intelli- gence, it is one thing to cultivate it for itself, by developing 1 See Compayre, History of Pedagogy, p. 380. 2 A very true statement of the case will be made, if we say that the purpose of intellectual education is to train or discipline the mind and to furnish it, and that this furnishing is to serve two purposes, use and enjoyment. (P.) 54 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. its faculties, and another thing to furnish it with the knowl- edges which constitute either the elements of wisdom or real science. Then we shall not confound instruction proper, the study of whatever must be learned and known, with the general culture of the intelligence, the educative effort by virtue of which the child leaves school not only instructed, but ca- pable of carrying forward his own instruction ; teachable, furnished with strong and pliant faculties, with an agile and firm memory, with accurate judgment, and with the power of exact reasoning. " Education," says Dupanloup, " eonsists essentially in the de- velopment of the liuman faculties. " If the care of the master and the efforts of the pupil do not result in developing, extending, elevating, and strengthening the faculties ; if they are limited, for example, to providing the mind with certain knowledges, and, if I dare say it, to storing them away there without adding to its breadth, its power, and its nat- ural activity, education will not have taken place ; there will be nothing but instruction. I would no longer recognize in this proc- ess that grand and beautiful creative work which is called educa- tion, edncare. The child might be, sti'ictly speaking, instructed, but he would not be educated. Even the education of the intel- lect would be imperfect. "In this there would be at most only an instruction of low quality, and in some sort passive, such as a weak and incom- plete being might receive." ^ In other terms, education has not only to present knowl- edges to a mind already formed, but its very first duty is to form that mind. 47. The Instruction and Education of the Mind. — Intellectual education is, then, something besides instruc- 1 Dupanloup, I)e I'Education, liv. ler, chap. ii. INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 55 tion: it is the end and aim, — instruction is but the means of attaining it. But instruction is not only valuable in itself : it is the essential means, the most powerful instru- ment, of intellectual education. Instruction, in fact, brings to the mind the aliment it needs for nourishment, for adding to its growth and stature. On this point American educators are fond of compar- ing the. mind with the body, and try to show that knowl- edge is the aliment of the spirit. " The appetite," says Mr. Baldwin, " craves food, and in the presence of suitable food the entire digestive apparatus acts ; food is converted into muscles ; muscles are used ; the result is physical power. The soul longs for knowledge; in the presence of suitable knowledge every faculty of the soul is roused to ac- tion ; the child knows, feels, chooses, acts ; the result is increased mental power." ^ No doubt the mind, if not fed, would become impover- ished and enfeebled. Even in mature age the intelligence, if it does not renew its provision of ideas by study, lan- guishes and grows weak, just as the body becomes ema- ciated under the influence of privations and of prolonged fasting. For a still better reason, at the period of its early development the intellect cannot grow strong if it is not nourished ; and it is instruction which is the aliment of the spirit. I add that if the aliment is well chosen, if the knowl- edges are presented with order, with discernment ; if the studies are systematic and well conducted ; not only will the mind become strengthened by them, but it will also 1 Baldwin, The Art of School Managemeitt, New York, 1881, p. 313. See the same principles developed in The Principles and Practice of Teaching, by James Johonnot, p. 15. 56 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. be trained. The natural fruit of instruction, wisely admin- istered, is not only wisdom but precision in the play of the faculties, — in a word, intellectual education. It is true, on the other hand, that instruction, if poorly administered, might still transmit knowledge, but it would be valueless for the general culture of the mind. Incom- plete studies leave dangerous flaws in the intelligence ; they develop only one or two faculties at the expense of all the others. Studies that are too hasty weary the mind, and may enervate it for life ; pushed too far, they encumber and weigh it down ; irregular and disconnected, they becloud and deform it. 48. Methods of Culture and Methods of Instruc- tion. — Instruction and intellectual education, then, are things which are inseparable. All the faults and all the excellences of instruction will be re-echoed in the develop- ment of the faculties, and will contribute, for good or ill, to the culture of the mind. There is no other means of cultivating and forming the intellectual faculties than exercise, — exercise which is judicious and prudent ; and there is no other intellectual exercise than instruction under its different forms. Does it follow tliat the educator ought immediately to undertake the examination of the different branches of instruction in order to study their methods, and that he has no other course to follow, in order to direct intel- lectual education and to determine its laws? By no means. There are two different points of de- parture in pedagogy, — either the thinking subject who is to be educated, or the objects which are to be taught. In the first case we start from the nature of man, con- sider the laws of the formntion of the faculties, and pro- pose general methods of culture in conformity with these INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 57 laws. In the second case we start from each one of the several branches of instruction, determine their nature and characteristics, and then determine the methods of instruction which are in conformity with these charac- teristics. In other terms, there are methods of culture inferred from the laws of psychology, and methods of instruction which, while striving to accord with ps^^chology, are based chiefly on the nature of the knowledges which are to be taught. We shall first study the methods of culture, by examining the different faculties one after another ; but before en- tering upon this detailed examination, it is necessary to reply to some general questions which govern the whole subject, and to recall certain principles which apply with- out distinction to all the parts of intellectual education. Moreover, it is not best to make too much of these consid- erations, which, simply because they are very general, offer no great practical interest. An American educator enu- merates no less than fourteen general principles of intellec- tual education.^ We shall not imitate his example, for to do this it would be necessary to enter upon the task of transcribing in this place all the results of psychological study. We shall assume that these results are known for the most part, and shall limit ourselves to a few obser- vations on the order of development of the faculties, on their necessary Iiarmou}', on the essential characteristics of intellectual education, and on the applications to edu- cation which result from them. 49. Order of the Development of the Faculties. — Is it true that all the intellectual faculties expand at once, just as at nightfall all the stars glow in the heavens? Or, 1 J. P. Wickersham, Methods of Instruction, pp. 37 - 51. 58 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. on the contrary, do they develop only successively, as the flowers unfold one after another on the stalk which supports them? Educators have resolved the question differently. If we are to believe Rousseau, .the mind is formed, so to speak, of successive layers ; there are stages, steps, in the evolution of the intellect. To the faculties of sense, which manifest themselves from the earliest years, there succeed very much later tlie faculties of abstraction and of reasoning. Other writers, who approach nearer the truth, incline towards the contrary exaggeration, and for the principle of succession substitute that of simultaneity. " We would bring all the facilities under the view of the educa- tor," says E. Joly, " for the purpose of studying them in the light of a useful and practical principle. This principle we would formulate as follows : The intellect is an aggregate of faculties which are developed simultaneously, and lend one another mutual assistance." ^ The truth is that all the mental faculties, if we consider them in their germs, appear in the child at the same time ; but they acquire their full power, attain their maturity, only one after another, and in an invariable order determined by the progress in age. Herbert Spencer, in well-known pages of his " Educa- tion," has determined the laws of intellectual evolution. He proves that the mind proceeds from the simple to the complex, from the concrete to the abstract, from the par- ticular to the general, from the indefinite to the definite, from the empirical to the rational.^ From these he concludes that we should first present to 1 PI Joly, Notions de pe'dagogie, p. 32. 2 For Joly's criticism on the laws laid down by Mr. Spencer, see Notions de pe'dagogie, pp. 46 et suiv. INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 59 children only simple subjects for study, sensible objects, particular things, in order to lead them forward step by step to complex truths, to abstract generalities, to con- ceptions of the reason ; and he draws the further inference from them that we can require of the infant intelligence only incomplete and vague notions, which tlie travail of the spirit will gradually elaborate and classify. 50. The Intellectual State of the Child. — Closely examine the child, and you will see that his faculties resem- ble those of the grown man more closely than is generally supposed. " The child of five years," says Madame Necker de Saussure, " is in possession of all the intellectual faculties accorded to humanity. Some of these faculties, weak and but little used, and often called into play by the most frivolous motives, express them- selves as yet only by insignificant acts ; but nevertheless we see them manifest themselves." ^ In the simple fact of drawing back his hand from the fire because he has once been burned by it, the child exhil)its memory, judgment, and inductive reasoning. It is none the less true that, in general, he feels more than he reasons, and that when he reasons he does so in his own way. " The perceptive powers," says Mr. Wickersham, " are sti'onger and more active in youth than the other intellectual faculties." ^ And the American educator adds : " A child is merely an animal until there is awakened in him the power of self-consciousness. After tliis I can find no time when all his faculties are not active in some degree ; but his perceptive powers are the strongest and most active during the whole period of childhood and youth." 1 L'Education progressive, Touie I., Preface. 2 J. P. Wickersham, Methods of Instruction, pp. 40, 41. 60 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " We nowhere find nature beginning anything," says Madame Necker de Saussure ; " we never surprise her at creating ; she always seems to be developing.' In other terms, if the child is alread}', from the intellectual point of view, a little man, if we find in him the germ and almost the equivalent of all the faculties of mature age, at least these faculties do not affect the same aspects in his case, are not all presented with the same degree of power and precision. Just as all articles of food do not agree with the stomach of the baJ)e, which as yet digests only milk, so all reasons are not fit for the reasoning of the child. He already feels the need of finding an explanation for things, of seeking their cause and purpose ; but he will accept for such explanations reasons which are trivial and puerile. The progress accomplished b}^ man from his early years up to maturity introduces into the mind no powers which are really new ; but it modifies their character, increases their vigor, and extends their compass. All the faculties are awakened at the same time in the human intelligence, just as upon a race-course all the runners start at the same instant ; but they do not advance at the same pace, — some take the lead, while others fall behind, and they reach the goal only one after another. 51. Progressive Education. — Intellectual education will take account of this successive development of the faculties. It will be progressive ; it will not forget that in its slow evolution the mind changes its identity from moment to moment ; that there are ages for the intelligence as for the body ; that little by little the primitive dispositions are renewed and transformed ; and that the moral nature is insensibly created. Consequently, in the aid which it will bring the child, either for exciting or for moderating his faculties, education will adapt itself exactly to the conditions INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 61 of nature and to the changes which occur in the soul with the march of time ; it will accompany the mind in all the stages of its progress, and will adapt itself to all its move- ments ; it will be, as Mr. Spencer has said, "the objective counterpart of the subjective development of the mind." 52. Equilibrium and Harmony of the Faculties. — From having recognized the differences which nature has established, with respect to the degree of development, among the faculties of the child, we shall not on that account come to forget the unity of the human soul. Edu- cation should be progressive, and not successive, as Rous- seau wished. The author of the Emile, so to speak, cut the existence of the child into distinct sections, as the period of sense-perception, the period of judgment. No ! the mind of the child is already an organized and complete whole, which contains in germ all the faculties ; and if it is not possible to put them all upon the same footing, to make them all march abreast, at least there is not a single instant in life when we should not try to cultivate and develop them all, though in different degrees. The independent culture of each faculty should not make us lose sight of the final aim, which is the harmony and the equilibrium of all the faculties. " The equilibrium of the faculties, in the human intelligence, is what tlie equilibrium of forces is in the physical world, — it maintains order without hindering movement. Every faculty strong enough to suspend or cripple the action of other facul- ties is a despot; and in order to be sound the mind needs to be free." ^ Let us be on our guard against minds in which certain intellectual dispositions dominate exclusively and smother 1 Guizot, Conseils d'un pere sur V education. 62 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. the others. "When certain faculties destroy the equilibrium, genius, it is true, sometimes appears ; but the more often that which results from this unequal education is incohe- rence, disorder, and impotence. The ideal of a good intellectual education is a mind in which all the faculties occupy a place proportionate to their A^alue and importance, just as the ideal of a phj^si- cal education is a complete body in which all the organs are harmoniously developed and all the functions regu- larly co-operate in the maintenance of life. "The principal rule," says Kant, "is to cultivate no faculty solely for itself, but to cultivate each in view of the others ; for example, the imagination for the sake of the intelligence." Just as in the soul, as a whole, the seusibilit}' and the will ought to be neither sacrificed nor preferred to the intelligence, so in the intelligence itself no aptitude ought to be neglected, no one ought to be the object of a privi- leged culture. 53. The Faculties should lend one another mutual Support. — The harmony of the faculties so nicely con- forms to the intent of nature, and so to the purpose of education, that these different faculties are mutually helpful, and it is almost impossible to develop one without at the same time preparing for the development of the others. Nicole had called attention to this fact. "Instruction," he said, "gives neither inemory, imagination, nor intelligence, but it cultivates all these elements by strength- ening one through another. We aid the judgment by memory, and we relieve the memory by imagination and judgment." ^ It is only in minds badly trained that the different 1 Be VEducation d'un prince, p. 35. INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 63. faculties come into collision and manifest, so to speak, anarchical tendencies. A sound mind is a real organism, in which everything has its own place, but in which all things work together towards the same end. 54. General Characteristics of Intellectual Evolu- tion. — From all that has preceded it follows that the point of departure in intellectual education is the unequal march, the progressive evolution, of the different faculties, and that the term, the aim, is the development — I do not say equal, but proportionate and normal — of these same faculties. We now see where we are going and whence we set out. But by what routes shall we go? According to what general principles ought the educator to govern his con- duct? It is not sufficient to say tliat education as a whole will confonn to the order of nature. Nature, in fact, is a grand and vague word, which educators and moral- ists interpret just as it pleases them, and under cover of which they give currency to the most various and often to the most singular conceptions. Witliout entering into the details of method, which shall be the purpose of the chapters composing the second part of this work, it is proper to determine at this point some of the laws of intellectual evolution and the educa- tional results which flow from them. 55. The Mind is not a Vase to be filled, but a Fire that is to be made to glow. — The mind is not a tabxda rasa, a blank page, on which we have but to write, a simple receptacle which it sutlices to fill just as we fill a measure with grain ; but it is an aggregate of germs wliich aspire to develop themselves. How many times have teachers transgressed this psy- 64 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. chological law ! Do we not violate it every day when our chief concern is to cram the mind of the child, to accu- mulate a mass of knowledge, at the risk of smothering the intelligence, which we siiould only arouse and excite? The overcrowding of modern programmes is increasing from day to day, to the great detriment of intellectual liberty. Even supposing that the mind is at birth a vase ready made, it would still be an insoluble problem to propose to have contained in a vase of invariable dimensions ten, twenty, or a hundred times as much matter. But besides, it is not the purpose of education to produce prodigies of memory, erudites capable of discussing whatever is knowable. " The purpose of study," says Greard, " is above all else to create the instrument of intellectual labor, to make the judg- ment surer ; and for this purpose it is not necessary to teach all that it is possible to know, but that of which it is not permis- sible to be ignorant." ^ Then let us renounce the pretensions of those who would have the human intelligence the resume of universal knowl- edge. Let us no longer admire feats of strength like those mentioned by Dupauloup. " One pupil recited the whole of the Telemaque, another re- cited a grammatical analysis which contained more than sixty tliousand Greek and French words." Let us return to the old maxim, Non multa, sed multum. It is better to know a few things thoroughly than to know all things superficially. 56. Respect for the Liberty and the Voluntary Ef- fort OF the Child. — The teachers who still believe that 1 M^moire sur la question des programmes dans I'enseignement se- condalre, 1884. INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 65 the mind is an inert, passive capacity, of course have no regard for the liberty of the child ; there is no occasion for respecting powers whose existence is not admitted. B«t all those who believe that nature has planted in the in- telligence vital principles, which await only a favorable occasion and a proper stimulus to awaken and expand, feel on the contrary the need of not hampering and not opposing the natural evolution of the mind. Allow the child who is beginning to think the largest liberty possible. Do not bend his intelligence to artificial forms ; do not compel him to endure by force too many didactic lessons ; do not impose on him a diet which he is not capable of digesting. " When men," says Mr. Spencer, " received their creed and its interpretations from an infallible authority deigning no expla- nations, it was natural that the teaching of children should be dogmatic. While 'believe and ask no questions' was the maxim of the church, it was fitly the maxim of the school. Conversely now that Protestantism [Mr. Spencer should add, ' and philoso- phy'] has gained for adults a right of private judgment, and established the practice of appealing to reason, there is harmony in the change that has made juvenile instruction a process of exposition addressed to the understanding." ^ 57. We must know how not to be in haste. — "The most useful rule of all education," said Rousseau, " is not to gain time, but to lose it." Under the form of a paradox, this was saying that it is not wise to make haste, and that education ought to act upon the frail and delicate intelligence of the child with a slowness copied from nature. " Let us protect ourselves," says Madame Pape-Carpantier to the same effect, " against that unthinking zeal, or that culpable vanity, which would exact from the child all that his elastic intelligence 1 Education, p. 97. 66 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. can produce, at the risk of exhausting it, at the risk of destroying the fruit in the flower." 58. Attractive Lahor. — It is a truth now generally admitted that there are no studies really profitable, save those which respond to the needs of the intelligence, and there provoke an agreeable excitation. Herbert Spencer ear- nestly recommends that the tastes of the child shall be taken into account. "Work," says Greard, " being but the devel- opment of natural activity, the exercise of that activity ought certainly to make the child happy." The pleasure which the child feels is in fact the sign that his mind is developing with ease, that he is assimilating the knowledge which has been presented to him. On the other hand, his repugnances, his indolence, and his inertia prove that the instruction which displeases him has been presented at too early a period, or has been presented in a bad way.^ 1 Following Mr. Spencer, M. Corapayre assigns two reasons why studies may be disagreeable to a child : (1) They may be unseasonable or (2) they may be badly presented. There is still another reason: they may involve a mode of mental activity which has not yet been developed so fully as to proceed with facility, and hence with pleasure. Under the most favorable circumstances, the beginning of a new subject will often be unpleasant, because the mind has not yet become accustomed to this new mode of exercise. If we regard symmetry and harmony of development as one aim of education, a pupil's dislike of a study may indicate that he ought to pursue it. It should be added also that a study will grow tedious when the mental activity it involves reaches the fatigue-point. In a word, the same rules may be applied to mental as to physical activity. In both cases free and spontaneous activity is agreeable ; activity that is constrained, or that reaches the fatigue-point, is tedious or disa- CTeeable. But these last condilions are often inevitable, and are even desirable, for robustness, power, and manliness can be attained in ji ) otiier way. In a larger sense, there is no discipline like a noble .•xiriow. (P.) INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 67 Pleasure, then, is not a thing to be despised in instruc- tion ; it will give to the faculties au unusual animation. And it is not necessary, in order to make the child happy in his work, to attempt to enliven instruction hy amusements which impair its character. It is sufficient to follow a proper order, one adapted to the powers of the child. Mental activity is agreeable in itself. " Where young people are taught as they ought to be, they are quite as happy in school as at play, seldom less delighted — nay, often more — with the well-directed exercise of tlieir mental energies, than with that of their physical powers." ^ 59. Necessity of Effort. — ^ But the legitimate desire to make study agreeable, to sweeten the toil of the child, ought not to make us forget the necessity of effort. Let us not 3'ield to the temptation of saying, with Fcnelou, " every- thing should be done with pleasure." According to the amiable author of the Education des Jilles, everything should be learned while playing. This is neither possible nor desir- able. Let us avoid whatever is repulsive, but let us not go so far as to proscribe what is laborious. " School is a forced culture," says Kant. " We should accustom the child to work It is to render him a very poor service to accustom him to regard everything as play ''Whatever is done to make study agreeable," says Rousseau, " will prevent children from profiting by it And so Ma- dame de Stael says : ' The education that takes place by amusing one's self dissipates thought. Pain of every kind is one of the greatest secrets of nature, and the mind of the child ought to accustom itself to studious efforts, just as our soul should be accustomed to suffering.' " " Asceticism is disappearing out of education, as out of life," Mr. Spencer has said, in his brilliant way. Yes ; but ^ Professor Pillaus, quoted by Herbert Spencer, Education, p. 159. 68 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. for the old-time asceticism there must not be substituted a sort of pedagogic epicureanism, distinguished by instruction which is amusing as well as by discipline which is lax. Pain ought not to be purposely proscribed in education. It awakens new ideas in the soul ; it stirs the mind to depths scarcely suspected before the suffering came. No stimulus is equal to that of pain, for liberating the human personality from the disguises which envelop it. " Man is an apprentice ; pain is his master ! " 60. The Inner Development of the Mind. — The idea of an inner and spontaneous development of the mind is not a new thing in pedagogy. "Properly speaking," says Nicole, "it is not the teacher nor outside instruction, which causes things to be comprehended ; they do nothing more than expose tliem to the interior light of the mind, by which alone they are comprehended ; so that when there is not tlie concurrence of this light, instruction is to no more purpose than as though one were to exhibit pictures in the night." In fact, in an education properly administered, it is of less importance to assure the superficial instruction, the exterior culture and adornment of the mind, than to secure its inner and profound development. "To instruct a child," said Madame Necker de Saussure, pithily, "is to construct liim from within." Let us, then, reject all methods of instruction which, like those of the Jesuits, leave inactive the inner forces of the soul. To find for the mind occupations which absorb it, which lull it like a dream, without wholly awakeuing it ; to call attention to words, to niceties of speech, to the trivial facts of history, so as to reduce by so much the opportunity for thinking ; to provoke a certain degree of intellectual activity, prudently arrested at the point where reflective INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 69 reason succeeds a garnished memory; — in a word, to stir the mind from without just enough to rescue it from its natural ignorance, but not enough to make it really act for itself by a manly display of all its faculties, — such was the method of the Jesuits. It is good for nothing but to make grown-up children, not men. 61. Means to be Employed. — It is not our purpose in this place to enter upon details of method ; this is a subject which we shall resume further on (see Part Second). Let us merely illustrate, by a few quotations, the extent to which modern educators, particularly American educators, are pre- occupied with the inner activity of the mind. " The teacher should never do for the child what it can do for itself. It is the child's own activity that will give strength to its powers and increase the capacity of the mind. The teacher must avoid telling too much or aiding the child too frequently. A mere hint or suggestive question, to lead the mind in the proper direc- tion, is worth much more than direct assistance, for it not only gives activity and consequently mental development, but culti- vates the power of original investigation." ^ Mr. Wickersham, another American educator, proceeds in the same vein : " The condition of the learner should not be one of passive reception, but of earnest self-exertion. One trial of strength should induce other trials ; one difficulty overcome should ex- cite an ambition to triumph over other difficulties. The teacher should create interest in study, incite curiosity, promote inquiry, prompt investigation, inspire self-confidence, give hints, make suggestions, tempt pupils on to try their strength and test their skill." ^ Mr. Wickersham continues by citing the example of a bird teaching her young ones to fly. 1 Edward Brooks, Normal Methods of Teaching, pp. 21, 22. 2 Wickersham, op. clt, pp. 23, 24. 70 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " One of my best lessons in teaching was taught me by a robin. It was in my garden^ and the mother-robin was teacliing her young brood to fly. A little robin sat upon the nest and seemed afraid to move. The mother-bird came and stood by its side, stroked it with her bill, and then hopped to a neighboring twig and stood awhile, as if to mduce the little bird to follow. Again and again she repeated her caresses, and then hopped nimbly to the same twig. At length the little bird gained courage, and to the great joy of its mother shook its weak wings, started, and stood by her side. Another more distant twig was now selected, and further effort brought the little bird to it also. And so the process was repeated many times, until the timid fledgling, now grown quite bold, could sail away with its mother over woodlands, fields, and meadows." Under a pleasing form the above is a paraphrase of this thought of Froebel : ' ' Let teachers not lose sight of this truth : Always and at the same time they must give and take, precede and follow, act and let act." 62. Intellectual Inequalities. — In spite of Jacotot's paradox, "All intelligences are equal," it is certain that pro- found differences separate minds in theii' native constitution, and that these intellectual inequalities do not all come from the fact that we do not all have the same tastes and the same will. The teacher should know how to take into ac- count this diversity of faculties, and should recall the maxim of Locke, "Thei'e are perhaps no two children who can be brought up by exactly the same methods," However, do not let us push the significance of these observations too far. Do not let us diversify intellectual education without limit. While pa3^ing regard to natural inequalities for the purpose of correcting them, and to special aptitudes for the purpose of favoring them, let us not forget that we must propose to all pupils the same aim, and that, in general, it is possible to lead them to it. As INTELLECTUAL EDUCATION. 71 Madame Guizot said, "Save in some special and rare eases, we are all made for everything. . . . We must not so de- vote our faculties to one special line of action as to become unfitted for every other." ^ 63. Special Aptitudes. — It is not best, then, to follow the current of nature with absolute compliance, and when a child gives evidence of particular dispositions, to fall in, so to speak, with his predilections, and to devote him by prefer- ence to the things for which he has a marked aptitude. On this point it seems to us that Nicole is lacking in wisdom and moderation. " There are children," he said, " who should be busied with scarcely anything except what depends on the memory, because they have a prompt memory and a weak judgment; and there are others who should devote themselves to the things that de- pend on the judgment, because they have more judgment than memory." "^ No ; without asserting that education ought to cast all minds in the same mould, nor that we should try to bring all intelligences up to the same level, let us not renounce the purpose to have them pursue a common ideal. For guarding the personality of each pupil, and for assuring sufficient liberty to his particular dispositions, we have done enough when, for the old tyrannical and oppressive methods, we have substituted the new methods, which appeal to the spontaneity and the voluntary effort of the child. 64. Intellectual Education itself should have a Practical Aim. — Even in our day we too often forget the old Latin adage, Vitce, non scholce^ discitur (It is for life, 1 Lettres de famille stir V education, p. 77. 2 Nicole, De VEducation d'un prince, p. 35. 72 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY, not for school, that instructiou is given). Preparation for hfe, — such is the true definition of instruction, especially of common-school instruction. It is not a grammarian, it is not a logician, as Montaigne says,^ but a man that is to be trained. Then let us not demand that intellectual education should develop the brilliant faculties whose purpose is mental adornment, the faculties which serve for display, serviceable to men of leisure, but not adapted to the humble and labori- ous condition of the common people. What is needed is a manly training of the useful faculties, those of which it may be said that they are arms for the battle of life. Doubtless the common school is not a technical or professional school, but it ought to be a practical school. "The end of educa- tion," justly remarks an American writer, "is not to teach pupils to know and use books, but to know and make right use of themselves."" 1 See Compayre's IHstorij of Pedagogy, p. 103. 2 Baldwin, op. cit., p. 313. CHAPTER IV. THE EDUCATION OF THE SENSES. 65. The Beginning of Intelligence. — He who would know in its completeness the nature of the intelligence should study the child l)eside his cradle. At first he is but a little, inert mass, that awakens only to cling to his mother's breast or to weep ; and yet in that body still so frail there slumber the germs of a comi)lete moral personality. Upon contact with the exterior world all these germs will expand, all that latent life will awake, all that is potential will become active. It seems as though an invisible hand were pouring, drop by drop, into that deli- cate and fragile vase, soul and intelligence. In a few days a smile will come to animate the lips of the infant ; movements more and more characteristic will give evidence of his vitality ; they will express either his instincts or simpl}^ his general need of activity. Finally, at the end of a few months, a sort of prattling — feeble cries indefinitely repeated — shows that this feeble child already has some glimmers of intelligence, and that he wishes to communicate them. We have often heard of the slowness with which nature proceeds in organizing the faculties of the child. I confess that it is rather the contrary that impresses me. When we think of the origin of the child, that only a few months ago he had no formal existence, how can we fail to be astonished at that prodigy which is renewed every day, and which gives 73 74 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. rise in so brief a time to a new being, nearly similar in everything, except stature, to the authors of his life? Espe- cially how can we fail to admire the intellectual progress which, through the acquisitions of the senses, is accom- plished within a few years ? ' ' The period in which the child has no teacher," says Egger, "is perhaps that in which he learns most and most rapidly. Let one compare the number of ideas acquired between birth and the age of five or six, with those which he acquires in the years follow- ing, and he will be astonished at this great precocit}'." ^ 66. Seksations and Perceptions. — We assume to be known whatever psychology and physiology teach of the organs and the functions of the five senses, — seeing, hearing, touching, smelling, and tasting. Let us dwell only on what it is important for the educator to know, if he would proceed successfully in the education of the senses. The sensations peculiar to the five senses are not merely affective perceptions, — that is, sources of pleasure or of pain, — but they are also representative perceptions, that is, the sources of images, of ideas, and of knowledges.'^ While the interior sensationSf those which accompany' the play of the organic functions, teach us nothing of the nature of the organs where they are developed, the exterior sensations inform us of the qualities of the objects which produce them, and those objects themselves. From the earliest years of life perception is quite readily disengaged from sensation, and the perception is already knowledge, — it consists essentially in distinguishing the difference between objects. "Mind," says Mr. Bain, "starts from discrimination. The con- 1 Egger, Observations sur le de'velojipment de I'intelligence, 1879. 2 Kousseau was wrong in saying, " The first sensations of children are purely affective: they perceive only pleasure and pain." THE EDUCATION OF THE SENSES. 75 sciousness of difference is the beginning of every intellectual exer- cise." ^ And at the same time that the mind, through successive perceptions, discriminates objects from one another, it soon comes to discriminate itself from these objects. Self- consciousness, the inner sense, is inseparable from the development of the external senses. 67. Importance of Sense-Intuitions. — The notions fur- nished by the senses are one of the essential elements of the human intelligence. It were an error to think thQ,t the senses do not give us ideas. " Before the age of reason," said Rousseau wrongly, "■ the child does not receive ideas, but images." From the fact of being sensible, the represen- tations of sight and of hearing are none the less ideas. Doubtless the consciousness, applied to the intei'ior modi- fications of the self, is a fruitful source of knowledge ; but how much richer and vaster is the domain of exterior per- ception ! Our abstract and general ideas themselves are but the derivatives of a mental effort which compares, separates, and unites the concrete data of the senses. Doubtless it is no longer necessary to make of the senses the only source of intellect, as Locke, Condillac, and Come- nius also taught.'^ The mind has its own constitution and its necessary laws ; natural or acquired, innate or hereditary, reason exists prior to the senses and governs their exercise ; as, for example, when it obliges us to admit an external reality, the cause and basis of sensible representations. 1 Alexander Bain, Education as a Science, p. 15. 2 " It is certain," says Comenius, in the preface to the Orbis Pictus, " that there is nothing in the understanding which had not before been in the senses." 76 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. But, nevertheless, the senses are the origin of the most of our knowledge ; they enrich the mind with a multitude of notions. It suffices, to judge of their importance, to see to what a wretched condition is reduced the intelligence of the unfortunates who have l)een deprived of several, or even of a single one, of their senses. The mind is not, as certain philosophers have supposed, a force wliich is self-sufficing ; it has need of nourishing itself from without, through an incessant communication with nature ; in a word, it is, in large measure, but the conscious echo of an external world. 68. General Culture of the Senses. — The senses are in great part organized and formed by nature. A natural evolution carries forward each of them to its point of normal perfection. There is, however, for the faculties of sense- perception, as for all the others, an education proper, a real culture, which alone can secure to the senses all the pre- cision, all the delicacy, of which they are susceptible. The starting-point in this education of the senses depends upon physiology and hygiene. The integrity and the health of the organs must be protected. In the education of the vision, for example, the first duty belongs to the oculist. The senses are the instruments, the material tools, which must be kept clean, strong, and iu a normal condition. But nature presents, in the case of a great number of individuals, grave imperfections which ought to be corrected so far as this is possible, and corrected at first by physical means. Some are near-sighted, some have imperfect vision, some are color-blind ; some ai-e hard of hearing, and some almost deaf. For these difficulties medicine and hygiene offer rem- edies, or at least palliatives. Sometimes an infirmity of the senses is caused, not by a defect in the special construction of the organ, but by a THE EDUCATION OF THE SENSES. 77 general weakness of the constitution. By fortifying the whole body and the general health, we assure the health and vigor of the organs of sense-perception. Finally, edu- cation, from this first point of view, ought carefully to avoid all the material causes of the enfeebling of the senses, — bad conditions of lighting, for example, — which might in- jure the natural and normal sensibility of vision. But all has not been done when we have provided, thi'ough hygiene, for the health of the organs of sense. It is much to have good tools at our disposal, but this is not enough ; we must know how to use them. Like all the faculties, the senses are perfectible. Between what they are naturally, and what they can become by a methodic and regular cul- ture, there is a considerable margin. Exercise is the great secret of this education of the senses. It is by practice that the painter and the musician, the artisan and the artist, learn to see and to hear with a degree of accuracy and power to which the untaught do not attain. We know what mar- vellous power is attained by the hearing of savages and huntsmen, the touch of the blind, and the sight of sailors. Laura Bridgman, deaf, dumb, and blind, has succeeded through touch alone in distinguishing the colors of the dif- ferent balls of yarn or of silk which she employs in her sewing and embroidery. Finally, we must recollect that the senses are mutually complementary. Touch corrects the illusions of sight and extends its sphere. Sight illumines and guides the hearing. Besides these individual and special perceptions, natural perceptions, as the psychologists say, each sense has its acquired perceptions., which it owes in part to the co-opera- tion of the other senses. Hence, again, the educator has a new occasion for intervention, for the purpose of aiding the senses in mutually controlling and correcting themselves, and in becoming by their accord the admirable and infallible instrument for acquiring a knowledge of the material world. 78 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. 69. Opinion of Rousseau. — Rousseau is the first who understood the importauce of tlie education of the senses. " A child," he says, " is not so tall as a man ; he has neither his strength nor his reason, but he sees and hears as well as he, or nearly as well. . . . The first faculties which are formed and perfected in us are the senses. These are the first that should be cultivated; they are the only ones tliat are forgotten, or that are most neglected. " To exercise the senses is not merely to make use of them, but it is to learn to judge correctly by them ; it is to learn, so to speak, to feel, for we can neither touch, nor see, nor hear, except as we have been taught." What pleases us particularly in Rousseau's thought is that he does not consider the senses simply as instruments for perfecting the mind ; but he studies them in themselves and seeks the means of training them. It is not merely the ed- ucation of the mind through the senses which concerns him, but above all the education of the senses themselves. 70. Methods of Pestalozzi and Froebel. — To Rousseau belongs the merit of having recommended theoretically the education of the senses, but to Pestalozzi and to Froebel be- longs the honor of having put it in practice, of having intro- duced it into the domain of school work. According to Pestalozzi, the point of departure in all intellectual education is to be found in the sensations. It was through things themselves that he wished to develop the intelligence of his pupils. It was not enough for him to have the objects seen, but they must be touched also ; the child turned them about in all directions, until he had perfectly caught their form and observed their qualities. Pestalozzi went still further ; he obliged the child to weigh, measure, and analyze the material things which he had taken into his hands, and at the same time he drilled the pupil in THE EDUCATION OF THE SENSES. 79 naming, in designating by the proper word, the qualities, the relations, the dimensions which his sight or his hand had distinguished in the objects. "See and name," was the principle of his elementary method of instruction. It is in the same spirit that Froebel successively developed before the eyes of the child the marvels of the six gifts ; that he first exhibited to the sight concrete objects, such as balls of colored wool and geometrical solids ; and that he taught him to distinguish their contents, form, and material, "in such a way," says Greard, "as to accustom him to see, — that is, to seize the appearance, form, resemblances, differ- ences, and relations of things." 71. The Special Education of each Sense. — Madame Necker de Saussure is not wholly right when she requires that the child shall carry forward the training of the five senses simultaneously. In fact, some of the senses are more precocious, and others more tardy, in their develop- ment ; and, besides, the senses are of unequal importance, and, not rendering the same services, do not deserve the same attention. Finally, each of them has its own condi- tions and its own laws. Hence the educator needs to study them one after another and to cultivate them separately, without, however, losing sight of their mutual relations. 72. Smell and Taste. — Smell is perhaps the one of all the senses that is developed latest. Rousseau is right in claiming that children remain for a long time insensible to good and bad odors. Moreover, we can scarcely understand why smell is called "the sense of the imagination," on the pretext that odors and perfumes often recall memories which have long been slumbering. Taste, on the contrary, just because it responds to the essential need of infant life, alimentation, — taste is very 80 THEOEETICAL PEDAGOGY. early developed. Sensations of taste would be the first, were they not preceded by vague tactile sensations. The infant at once recognizes the sweetish taste of milk. If he is offered water, or milk but slightly sweetened, he rejects it. He refers everything to the sense of taste, and carries all objects to his mouth. Smell and taste are both inferior senses which have scarcely any connection with the intellectual life. They furnish us sensations ratlier than perceptions. The}' are the agents of the physical life and of the digestive functions. They put us on guard against certain dangers. They in- struct us concerning aliments and liquors. They are the sources of pleasures and pains, rather than of knowledges and ideas. By their tendency towards excesses, by their unhealthy stimulus, they may contribute towards developing and nourishing evil appetites, such as gluttony and drunk- enness ; but the part they play in the life of the spirit is mediocre, if not wholly null. They fall, then, chiefly under the cognizance of moral education, which must undertake to restrain them, to mod- erate then' excesses, and to repress their caprices, their daintiness, their excessive and violent preferences. " Let the diet of the child," says Rousseau, " be plain and simple ; let his palate be made familiar only with moderate savors, and let him contract no exclusive taste." " The abuse of odoi's and perfumes," says Bernard Perez, " enervates the body and enfeebles the will. I would not have a bouquet in the infant's chamber, or perfumes in his baths, on his hair, or upon his garments. However, I would have him very sensitive to the sweet odors of flowers." 1 Taste and smell may, however, render some services to the intelligence. The chemist recognizes a body by its 1 Bernard Pe'rez, L'dlucatlon des le hercGau, p. 49. THE EDUCATION OF THE SENSES. 81 characteristic odor ; he distinguishes sulistauces as sapid aud insipid. The taster recognizes tlie vintage and the age of wines simply from the impression which they produce on his pahite. There is, then, some interest, from the intel- lectual point of view, in training even the senses of smell and taste, in rendering them more clever in discerning shades of sensible impressions. 73. Education of the Sekse of Hearing. — The per- ceptions of hearing have a wholly different importance. Hearing makes us acquainted with isound and tlie different qualities of sound, — acuteness, gravity, intensity, volume, timbre. In this way hearing brings us into relation with a multitude of objects. But what is especially to be noted is that hearing is particularly the social sense, since by means of it we hear the voice of our fellows and know their thoughts. Hearing is also an artistic sense, since it makes possible music, the most popular, the most insinuating of all the arts. The hearing is often defective. " The number of children who have imperfect hearing is much greater than is com- monly supposed."^ In many cases the only cause of this weakness is the uncleanliness of the ears, and can easily be corrected ; but iu other cases there is a natural and organic infirmity, — the child confounds certain syllables and certain words with words and syllables of simihTr assonance. With pupils thus poorly endowed the teacher ought to be particularly indul- gent. He ought to bring them as near to himself as possilile in the class-room, and should oblige himself and all their companions always to speak very distinctly. The natural education of the hearing is relatively rapid. 1 See the Eapport of Jacoulet, ah-eady mentioned. 82 THEOEETICAL PEDAGOGY. The infant hears from the first day of its life. " On the tliirty-sixth da}^," says M. Cuiguet, "the child that I am observing as yet recognizes no one with his eyes, no matter who takes him or who walks with him ; Init he recognizes his mother by her voice." ^ The slightest sound makes the babe tremble in its cradle. But what is slower and more delicate is the musical edu- cation of the hearing. At first all noises please the child. He loves noise for the sake of noise. In the matter of music he is no harder to please than animals, apes, and bees. It seems that his acoustic sense finds pleasure simply in being excited, in whatever way it may be. The more he is stunned, and the more he stuns others, the happier he seems. The culture of the musical sense is then a necessity, particularly to-day when singing has become a part of edu- cation, and because inaptitude in singing is the result of a defective culture of the hearing. In general, in the education of the hearing, we should be guided by the following rules : — " For the hearing, as for all the other senses, moderation is indispensable if we would preserve its integrity and its sensibil- ity. We become accustomed to noise, it is true ; but its effect is none the less pernicious. On the other hand, the complete ab- sence of noise gives to the hearing an unliealthy sensibility, like that contracted by the sight of persons who have long been de- prived of light." 2 74. Education of the Touch. — The general sensations of touch are very early developed, because the entire body is its organ. At a very early period the infant shows that it is sensible to hard and rough contacts, to slight pressures, and that it suffers from them. A sensation of contact which 1 M. Cuignet, Annales d'oculistique, Tome LXVL, p. 117. 2 Dr. Saffray, Dictionnaire de pe'dagogie, art Oitie. THE EDUCATION OF THE SENSES. 83 would be indifferent to an adult makes it scowl or cry, and the touch of a warm aud caressing hand causes it a very lively pleasure. But we must distinguisli the primitive sensation, wholl}'^ passive, of touch in general, from the active sensation whose essential organ is the hand. The infant first feels with the lips. As to the hand, it learns rather slowly to make use of it. For many months it notices objects without making an attempt to grasp them. " It is easy," says Madame de Saussure, " to observe the gropings of experience in the manner in wliicli the infant learns to make use of touch. This sense is slow in obeying the orders of the will. Tt is obliged, in some sort, to receive the stinmlus of the sense of sight, whose education it in turn perfects." 75. The Child's Power of Sight. — At the age of three or four years the child already astonishes us by the admirable precision of his sight, by the ease and deftness of his vision. It seems that he has looked at nothing, and yet he has seen everything. The mature man, and even the 3'oung man, preoccupied with thought or with inner emotion, often looks only with distraction upon things without ; but the child, free from after- thoughts, eager and curious, in the freshness and power of his nascent faculties lets nothing escape him of all that is presented by the shifting scenes of reality ; we might say that his whole soul is in his eyes. A clever observer of children, M. Legouve, has called attention to this in a humorous vein : — " The child is all eyes. He has an incomparable power of visioii. Compared witli him, we are blind. Take j-our son with you into a chamber, a workshop, or a palace, and on coming out interrogate him. You will be amazed at all he has seen. At a single glance he has made an inventory of the fm-nitm-e. 84 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. the walls, the objects useful an^'otnen.ade ; he will reduce the number of conjugations and say hatter instead of battre, because he has learned that most verbs are conjugated Hive aimer. Gradually, however, the child becomes capable of real reasoning, that which implies attention, mental effort, and the conscious concatenation of judgment and ideas ; and this process of reasoning appears rather early in children well endowed. 186. Education of the Reason. — For the reason, as for the judgment, there is not, properly speakijig, any special training ; but in whatever he teaches the child, — grammar, history, the sciences, etc., — the teacher may habituate the child to reason, and ought to do so. '- There is no subject of study which may not in the hands of an intelligent and efficient teacher be made helpful to this result. Thus the study of physical geography should be made the occasion for exercising the child in reasoning as to the causes of natural phenomena. History, again, when well taught may be made to bring out the learner's powers of tracing an- alogies, finding reasons for events (e. g.. motives for actions), and balancing considerations so as to decide what is probable, wise, or just in given circumstances." ^ However, the teaching of the sciences remains the grand instrument for the education of tlie reason. In fact, the sciences are but aggregates of general knowledges, rigor- ously based on exact deductions and orderly inductions, presented in a methodical and logical order, and expressed with precision. There could not be a better school for the faculties of reflection. In studying the physical scienc, s the student accustoms himself to generalize and to make in- ductions with caution, and in striving to comprehend the 1 Sully, op. cit., p. 445. 180 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. demoustrations of the mathematical sciences he learns to make rigorous deductions. 187. Particular Tendency towards Induction. — The child is more inclined to induction than to deduction ; just as, when he alters the meaning of words, he generalizes them in their signification, rather than specializes them. It is easy to understand, in fact, that the mind at the first prefers to rise from the particular to the general, rather than to descend from the general to the particular. The thoughts of the child are almost all individual ; he has at his command only a small stock of general knowledge. Now all deduc- tion supposes general principles, universal truths. From this fact there follows this pedagogical conclusion, that the inductive sciences are best adapted to the first ^^ears of instruction. Educators are in error who, like Diderot, would begin with mathematics. 188. Moderation Recommended. — "Reasoning with children," says Rousseau, " was tlie great maxim of Locke, and it is the one chiefly in vogue to-day For my- self, I see nothing more silly than those children with whom one has reasoned so much." Rousseau would have a child remain a child. No doubt we should distrust precocious reasoners ; but this should not make us fall into the opposite error, which Rousseau was wrong in recommending, through his desire to retard beyond measure the development of the reasoning faculties. Locke was wiser when he wrote : " I think I may say there is not so much pleasure to have a Child prattle agreeably as to reason well. Encom-age, there- fore, his inquisitiveness all you can, by satisfying his demands and informing his judgment, as far as it is capable. When his reasons are anyway tolerable, let him find the credit and commendation of it. And when they are quite out of the way, THE FACULTIES OF REFLECTION. 181 let him, without being laughed at for his mistake, be gently put into the right ; and if he shows a forwardness to be reasoning about things that come his way, take care, as much as can, that nobody check this inclination in him, or mislead it by captious or fallacious ways of talking with him. For when all is done, this, as the highest and most important faculty of our miiids, deserves the greatest care and attention in cultivating it. The right improvement and exercise of our reason being the highest perfection that a man can attain to in this life." ^ 189. Special Exercises in Reasoning : Deduction and THE Syllogism. — Though the training of the reason is for the most part the natural result of the studies pursued and of the manner in which they are taught, it is not without use to propose to the child some special exercises iu reasoning. In ordinary discourse the reasonings are rarely expressed under the perfect form of a syllogistic argument. Conse- quently it is very useful to drill pupils in discovering, in carefully chosen examples, the different elements of the syllogism, as the conclusion, when only the premises are stated, or that one of the premises which, in the rapidity of the argument, has been left understood. By this means the pupil will acquire the habit of disentangling the error in the reasonings, often uncertain and ambiguous, of which the discourses of men are composed. Without needing to resort to the learned rules for deduction, but simply from having reconstructed the syllogism in its three propositions, an attentive mind will easily discover whatever of the false or the equivocal has slipped into the reasoning. First, here are examples of arguments in which the pupil will have to supply one of the fundamental propositions which are necessary to assure their validity. 1 Locke, op. cit., § 122. 182 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. 190. To Find the Premise which is Lacking in the Following Reasonings : — There is anger that is not blame- worthy. What other premise do you need to infer that certain passions are not blameworthy? Suppose a man says, " I detest foreigners." Find an- other premise, which joined with this assertion authorizes the conclusion, " No foreigner deserves to" be loved." Solon ought to be considered a wise legislator, because he adapted his laws to the character of the Athenians. A slave is a man : he ought not, then, to be a slave. Rousseau was a man too ardent not to commit many errors. The eruptions of volcanos and earthquakes cannot be considered as warnings sent by God to tlie wicked, since these scourges overtake both the innocent and the guilty. 191. To Find the Conclusion Intolved in the Following Assertions : — I know that A, B, and C are blockheads, and at the same time educated men : have I the right to draw any conclusion from this? No science can be absolutely perfect, and yet all the sciences deserve to be cultivated. Prejudices indicate a weak mind, and we sometimes meet with prejudices in men who are very well educated. 192. To Reduce the Following Arguments to the Syllogistic Form : — Poetry is not a science. The essen- tial characteristics of a science are truth and generality ; and poetry has neither. No war is for a long time popular, because war alwaj's brings an increase of taxes, and whatever is prejudicial to our interests enjoys but a passing popularity. Of two evils we must chose tiie least : so a temporary revolution being a smaller evil than a permanent despotism, should be preferred to it. THE FACULTIES OF REFLECTION. 183 In the examples which we have just proposed, the effort of the pupil should be directed to three poiuts : 1 . To set forth the conclusion with clearness, — that is, the thing to be proved, in such a way as to distinguish in a proposition the major term from the minor term; 2. To discover the middle term of the argument, of which there should be only one in every conclusive syllogism ; 3. To determine with exactness the two premises, one of which connects the major term with the middle term, and the other the minor term with the middle term. The syllogism once reconstructed, natural good sense usually suffices to determine the value and legitimacy of the argument. If there remains an}' doubt, it would l)ecorae necessary to apply the rules of logic to the suspected syllogism ; and if it violates none of these rules, it is legitimate and conclusive. 193. Inductive Reasoning. — In order to make pupils clearly understand the mechanism of inductive reasoning, their attention must be called to the three essential points in every induction: 1. The conclusion, which ought to be a proposition, an affirmation proving that two facts agree or do not agree ; 2. The character of generality in this prop- osition, which should be applicable to all the cases of a given order ; 3. The metJiod employed in order to arrive at this general proposition, a method which is an appeal to observation and to facts. An exact idea of the general propositions which are tlie result of every legitimate induction will be gained by taking examples in the different sciences. The magnet attracts iron (pin'sics). Bodies fall in a vacuum (physics). Bodies expand under the influence of heat (physics) . The simplest substances are those which manifest the strongest affinities (chemistry) . 184 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. Compounds are more fusible than elements (chemistry). The temperature; of boiling water destroys animal life (physiology) . The red corpuscles of the blood are charged with carrying oxygen to the tissues (physiology). Feeling is always united to the will and to the intelli- gence (psychology). Fear enfeebles the faculties (psychology). The more vivid the consciousness, the more tenacious the memory (psychology). The development of the brain corresponds to the de- velopment of the muscles, and in general of all the organs (zoology). CHAPTEE IX. CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 194. Moral Education. — Intellectual education is surely the best of preparations for moral education. What- ever is done for developing the intelligence is far from being lost, so far as the culture of the sentiments, of the moral consciousness, and of the will is concerned. In a well-organized intelligence, all whose faculties have received the education appropriate to their destination, the moral qualities of the character germinate spontaneously. The man merely instructed is sometimes a bad man ; but we doubt whether the same thing is true of a man well educated intellectually. A tempered imagination, a power- ful attention, and a sound judgment, are reliable barriers which vouch for the ardor of the passions and prevent the errors of conduct. It is none the less true that intellectual education is not sufficient, but that the other faculties also demand a special culture. The man of feeling has no less value than the man of intellect. "We are not destined merely to know and comprehend, but are also made to feel and love. Moral education is, then, to be distinguished from intellectual education, and its first purpose ought to be the culture of the feelings. 195. Complex Nature of the Feelings. — Nothing so various, nothing so complex, as the psychological facts 186 186 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. which philosophers connect with the feelings. It is spe- cially here, in the presence of these phenomena so diverse, which are the elements of all the virtues and all the vices of humanity, — in the presence of the manifestations of what is humblest, grossest, and also most elevated and ideal in the human soul, — it is here that it is meet to summon before us, in order to reconcile them, the extreme opinions of those who say with Rousseau that everything is good in man, and with Hegel that everything is bad. Tlie feelings are the common source whence the most degrading passions and the most elevated sentiments borrow their aliment. It is to them that are beholden at the same time, the sensualist who forgets himself in bodily pleasures, the selfish man who is absorbed in the pursuit of personal good, the bad man who sacrifices everything to his vindictive spirit, the man devoted and good, who has no pleasure but in making others happy, the friend, the patriot, the philanthropist, who deny themselves in order to serve the objects of their pious affection. From this very diversity of the phenomena of the feel- ings, it follows that the function of education is twofold. On the one hand it must temper or even repress dangerous inclinations and bad passions, and on the other stimulate and develop the beautiful and noble elements in our emotional nature. 196. Division of the Inclinations. — The most of psychologists agree in distributing the inclinations or emotions into three classes : 1. The personal or individual inclinations, which have for their object the me and whatever is directly connected with it: such are the pleasures of self-love and of ambition. They are all included under one term, — selfishness. 2. The sympathetic or benevolent inclinations which CULTUKE OF THE FEELINGS. 187 attach us to others, and for which the positivist school has invented the barbarous term altruism : such are the affections in general, as patriotism and love of humanity. 3. The higher inclinations, whose object is abstract ideas, as the love of the true, the beautiful, and the good. Among these different manifestations of the feelings, the last form a class wholly distinct, — they pertain to what is highest in human nature, to ethics, to science, to art. We shall study them by themselves. At present we shall examine in their natural development and pedagogical treatment only the selfish and the benevolent inclinations. And at the first we shall throw into strong relief the inclinations which properly constitute the benevolent feelings, — love for others, in one word, the heart, through which, as the Pere Girard has said, " man is all that he is." 197. The Education of the Heart too often Neg- lected. — For a long time the psychologists have given the feelings their proper rank in the list of the human faculties ; but it seems that they have found it difficult to make themselves understood by teachers. In fact, open most of the works on pedagogy, and you will find that the chapter on the heart is generally omitted. And on this point the practice conforms only too closely to the theory. How many schools there arc in which no effort is made to cultivate the emotions, the sympathetic senti- ments, — all which makes men good, sociable, loving, and devoted ! Even more, it has occurred to certain writers to mention this omission as a merit in educators who should deem such a compliment a reproach. This quotation from M. Guizot is an example : " The almost absolute silence which Montaigne has main- 188 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. tained on that part of education which pertains to forming the heart of the pupil, seems to me a new proof of his good judgment." ^ 198. Necessity op this Education. — We cannot assent to such an assertion ; and it seems to us that the heart has as good a right as the mind to a special training. And first, do we need to prove that the heart is worth at least as much as the mind, and that the feelings deserve tlie care of the educator? Is it not evident that duty itself ought the most often to be placed under the keep- ing of emotion? There is no virtue really secure, save that which is founded on the love of virtue. "He alone is virtuous," said Aristotle, " who finds pleasure in being so." No doubt we should distrust men who, like Rous- seau, look onl}' in their hearts for the principles of their conduct. The heart should be governed by reason, and an ardent sensibility may be allied with the strangest freaks of judgment and conduct. But let us also distrust characters that are unfeeling, too rational, which are moved only by cold reflection. They will make more mistakes than we think, unless sentiment comes to their relief. Moreover, there are several of our affections which form an integral part of our duties. To love one's family, one's friends, one's country, is not only the source of the most delicate pleasures and the sweetest joys of life, but is also the first duty of a virtuous man. 199, Particular Difficulties in the Education of the Sentiments. — One of the reasons why educators are generally silent upon the nature of the heart, is probably the particular difficulty of this part of education. 1 Meditations et Etudes morales, p. 404. CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 189 We cannot give lessons in sensibility as we give lessons in reading or arithmetic. " Affection," says Miss Edge- worth, " is not learned by heart." The teacher holds in his hands the means of exciting the intellectual powers of the child ; he places objects before his eyes, com- municates knowledge to him through language, and in a manner acts directly upon the faculties of the soul ; but he has not the same power over the sentiments. We cannot command a child to be moved, as we requke him to be attentive. Besides, the great diversity which nature puts into human feelings complicates the problem still more. The heart, much more than the mind, is a natural endowment. Common opinion, and it is not wholly false, declares that we are born tender or unfeeling, affectionate or cold. Education seems powerless to warm up certain souls, to endow them with the life of the affections. Notwithstanding these ditliculties, there is an art of cultivating the feelings ; and this art consists chiefly in placing the soul of the child in circumstances that are the most favorable for the complete development of his natural disposition. 200. Development of Sympathy in the Child. — Originally, the child is but a bundle of selfishness ; and it is from this selfishness that there is gradually disen- gaged sympathy, the faculty of loving. Very early the child evinces sympathy or antipathy, not only in respect of persons and animals, but also of inanimate things. His toys, his wooden horses, his rubber- cats, inspire him with the tenderest affection ; and, on the other hand, he sincerely hates whatever hurts him or wearies him. "The switch and the wash-rag," says M. Perez, " are to hiin personal enemies." 190 TIIEOllETICAL PEDAGOGY. It is easy to prove that the earliest sympathies of the child are bestowed ouly on the persons who have given him a personal pleasure. A babe of six months will as yet bestow a smile only on its nurse and its attendant, — on its nurse, because she recalls to it the pleasing impressions of nourishment ; and on its attend- ant, because she soothes and caresses it. Habit and familiarity also play an important part in the development of the nascent affections, in the edu- cation of a sensibility that takes fright at whatever is new and unknown. Later, when to the pleasures of taste and touch there are added those of sight and hearing, the sympathy provoked by these new sensations, agreeable or disagree- able, is extended to sonorous or colored objects, to animals, for example, which, by the grace of their move- ments or the vivacity of their cries, give to the sight or the hearing of the child the occasion of agreeable ex- citement. In a word, sympathy follows step by step the suc- cessive manifestations of the pleasures of sense. 201. General Characteristics op Infant Sensi- bility. — The sensibility of the child has the same limits as his intelligence. The child bestows his thought only on actual things ; his memory goes back hardly beyond the moment that has just passed ; he cannot extend liis inductions into the future. And so his pleasures and his pains are restricted, so to speak, to the present hour. Hence at once the vivacity and the fugitive brevity of the child's emotions. His sensuous life is made up of momentary passions, sudden tears and smiles, violent pains, unexpected caresses, — in a word, of emotions that are as ardent as they are transient. We can see, in fact, CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 191 that, being determined solely by the presence of objects, the feelings of the child are quickly excited, but, on the other hand, they extend no deep roots, they remain on the surface, and are not fixed in the soul. The child is in ecstasies over a trifle ; with the spring of his young and supple powers he gives himself up to his joys and his sorrows. He bursts out in laughter, or he sheds floods of tears. He stamps with impatience and anger. But all this fire is quenched as soon as lighted. The moment the object is withdrawn or disappears, there is hardly a trace of the feeling left in him. As yet there is not enough power of thought in the mind of the child to re- tain and perpetuate the emotion. "As soon as new objects and new impressions present themselves to him," says Mr. Sully, " the current of passion subsides." 202. Abuse of the Feelings in Education. — There are educators whose favorite maxim is, "Always reason with children ; " but there are others who are not less deceived when they say, "Always appeal to their feelings." Education does not admit of any exclusive mobile,^ and the emotions less than any other. 1 The distinction between motives and mobiles, first made by Jouffroy, is worth preserving. Tlie state of mind that precedes an act always contains two elements, an intellectual and an emotional; and usually these elements are inversely proportional. Now when the stimulus to action is mainly intellectual, it is called by Jouffroy a motive; but when it is mainly emotional, he calls it a mobile. In the conduct of men of the highest type, motives predominate ; but brutes are governed wholly, and savages mainly, by mobiles. " Motives are the intellectual reasons which cause us to act in such or such a manner, such as thoughts and considei'ations of the mind. Mobiles, on the contrary, are the movements of the heart, the affections, the passions. For example, maternal love is a mobile, but the calculations of interest and the considerations of dignity are motives." — Marion, Lemons de Psj/chologie, p. 127. (P.) 192 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. "Were sensibility perfectly developed in the child, there would be danger in confiding in it exclusively. But the child's sensibility is small and limited, and when we count on its inspiration to govern his conduct, we often place our reliance upon a nothing. 203. False Appearances of Infant Sensibility. — In reality, the child is less sensitive than he seems. Deceived by appearances, we often attribute to him emotions which he does not feel. " The actions of children continually deceive us by their ex- terior resemblance to ours, and we as often go astray in trying to find in them, in order to govern them, mobiles similar to those of which we ourselves are conscious. Louise, in some passing transport, leaves her play, throws her arms about my neck, and cannot leave off embracing me ; it seems that all my mother's heart could not suffice to respond to the warmth of her caresses ; but she leaves me, and with the same playful movement goes to kiss her doll or the arm of the chair that she meets on her way." 1 There is an evident disproportion between the exterior manifestations of the child, his gestures, his motions, which attest the superabundance of life in his young body, and the real measure of tlie emotions which he experiences. Because the child is prone to cry, do not let us proceed, on false appearances, to ascribe to him a strength of emotion similar to our own. It is ridiculous to correct a child by saying to him, as Rousseau would after a fault has been committed, "My child, you have done me a wrong ! " J^ither the child will not compre- hend you, and your admonition will leave him indifferent, or he will appear affected, but will be so only upon the 1 Madame Guizot, Lettres defamille sur Vifducation, I., p. 6. CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 193 surface ; and in trying to excite a premature emotion you will have obtained only an affectation, a pretence of affection. " When the Duchess of Orleans was ill," says Miss Edge- worth, " the children were instructed to write ' charming notes ' from day to day, from hour to hour, to inquire how she did. Once, when a servant was going from Saint Leu to Paris, Ma- dame de Silleri asked her pupils if they had any commissions. The little Due de Chartres said, ' Yes ' ; and he gave a mes- sage about a bird-cage, but he did not recollect to write to his mother, till somebody whispered to him that he had for- gotten it." ^ Then let us take children for what they are, selfish little creatures, in whom the affectionate emotions grow but slowly, and without ever effacing the inclinations of personal interest. 204. General Rules for the Education of the Feelings. — The attentive study of the slow and con- tinuous progress of the feelings, rising little by little from the grossest pleasures of the senses to the most delicate emotions of the heart, is the best refutation that can be made of the error of educators who, like Rous- seau, would wait till the fifteenth year for developing the moral sentiments. We cannot too early cultivate the sensibility of the child and call into exercise, in chil- dren's friendships, in the affections of the family, a sensibility destined later to become enamored of still greater objects. On this point it is necessary to conform to nature, to instinct, and from an early age to give free course to the first emotions, to the first aspirations of the heart. The education of the feelings will at first be 1 Miss Edgeworth, op. cit., I., p. 368. 194 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. negative ; it will be content with avoiding whatever might wound or repress the nascent feelings. But little by little it will become positive ; that is to say, it will seek every occasion to excite, and at the same time to regulate, the sentiments, and to associate the child's pleasures with things that are good and beautiful. 205. Relations of Emotion to Idea. — The simplest psychological analysis suffices to prove that the emotions have direct relations with ideas. The feelings are exercised only upon the objects made known by the in- telligence. It is an error to suppose that the heart is impoverished in proportion as the mind is enriched. Would you have a child love his country? First teach him what his country is ; relate to him the history of his ancestors ; descri])e to him the extent of his native land. When the idea has once taken form in his mind, the emotion will follow and will spontaneously attach itself to the known object. It is not enough, however, to enlighten the intelligence ; we nuist interest the imagi- nation. An English philosopher has remarked that cold- ness of heart is frequently caused by a defective im- agination. " The story of the same accident, of the same tragical event, if told in a heartless and uninteresting manner, will leave us un- moved; but related in a manner which speaks to our imagination, it will move us to the very deptlis of tlie soul. This also explains how an accident which has happened in a city that we know, in our quarter, in our neighborhood, moves us infinitely more than if it had happened at a distance, in a foreign city, or in an un- known country." 1 The development of the feelings is thus intimately con- nected with the progress of the intelligence. We have no 1 M. Marion, Lemons de Psychologic, p. 182. CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 195 direct hold on the emotions ; we cannot evoke them at the word of command ; but by indirect means, by appeal- ing to reflection, by presenting to the child, either in narratives or in real examples, situations adapted to move him, we shall be able, by enlightening his mind, to find the road to his heart. The author of the Ecole maternelle relates an excellent lesson in filial affection. A little child in a salle d'asile had lost his mother. On coming back from the cemetery he had returned to school, where with the thoughtless- ness of his age he talked and laughed with his com- panions. When the time for opening school liad come, the mistress spoke as follows : " My children, we will not sing to-day, for to sing we must be happy and content. Now we cannot be content because here is a little child who is not happy. He has had the greatest nusfor- tune that can befall a child ; he has lost his mother, who loved him so much. To-night when he goes home he will not find his dear mother there to kiss him. You, my children,who find your mother at home, think while kissing her how happy you are in not hav- ing lost her. Love your mother ; and to show that you love her, never cause her any sorrow." And the mistress added, "Be very good to Charles, who no longer has a mother to love him." ^ 206. Communication of Feeling. — If feeling cannot be taught directly, there is a compensation in the fact that it can be communicated. Sensibility is contagious. Surround the child with affection and love, and he will respond to this appeal. His heart will l)e moved if he feels the beating of other hearts. All the faculties of the soul have a tendency to radiate, to expand ; but this is especially true of the emotions. If you discover cold- ness and insensibility in a mature man, do not condemn 1 Mademoiselle Chalamet, L'Ecole maternelle, p. 87. 196 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. him hastily ; for the fault is probably due to his parents, his first teachers, or to his surroundings, rather thau to himself. Madame de Maiuteuou Mas reason itself, but her Solidite, as Louis XIV. called her, was somewhat lacking in sensibility and benignity. This fault was certainly due in part to her education ; her mother had kissed her but twice in her whole life, and then after a long absence. The best means of making a child affectionate is to treat him with affection. Love is born of love. The soul opens and yields itself to the affection which is bestowed upon it. Surrounded by persons of gentle passions and benevolent dispositions, habituated to be an object of indulgence and affection, the child will naturally become gentle and affectionate. He will learn to feel the goodness whose effects he has experienced. " Let the teacher love his pupils, and their hearts will respond to his own. Love is naturally communicative ; it invites a gra- cious and sympathetic return. The child very well knows when he is loved; he sees it in the glances, m the words of his teacher, and when he recognizes in his teacher a patience full of affection, his heart grows tender and inevitably becomes at- tached to one who consecrates himself to him with such devotion. Then he runs to him with joy ; in his teacher he has found a friend and a father. " It is here that I take my stand," said Pes- talozzi ; " I would have my children able at each moment, from morning till evening, to read on my face and to divine upon my lips that my heart is devoted to them ; that their happiness and their joys are my happiness and my joys." ^ 207. Relations of Emotion to Action. — An ex- 1 Gautliey, De V Education, II., p. 8. It is not useless to note, with Madame Pape-Carpantier, that this affection of the teacher for his pupils ought to be particular, individual. " That children may love, love them. Love them, not from the heights of a lofty philan- CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 197 cellent means of cultivating the feelings is to provide occasions and procure the means for calling them into exercise. The Abbe de Saint Pierre required as school exercises acts of benevolence and justice. At least we may require of children, in then* own family, acts of tenderness towards their brothers, respect for their parents, and at school, acts of good- will towards their schoolmates. By the very fact that he has been accus- tomed to practice a virtue, the child will acquire the feeling which ordinarily accompanies and inspires that virtue. By giving alms he will learn to love the poor ; by doing others a service he will come to love humanity. But on one condition, however, — that the acts suggested to the child are suited to his nature, that they already accord with his tastes, and that they are not constrained and forced. Only then will the child find in the act accom- plished a new source of pleasure, and this pleasure, once tasted, will stimulate him to repeat the act. It is a truth which deserves recognition, that we love only because we find pleasure in loving. But care must be taken not to be satisfied with appear- ances. In sentiment, as in religion, it is the reality which is important, not the exterior formalities. The rich child, for example, gives money freely to the poor, when he has it ; but he who lives in abundance does not know the value of money, he feels no privation from what he has done. Then accustom the child only to acts adapted to his age, whose significance he can comprehend. In this exercise of the child's sensibility, care should be taken to have him understand the effects which his acts thropy, — you will then be too far away from them ; love all the children on the globe, if your soul is large enough ; but love above everything else, and in particular, each one of those who are intrusted to your care. No abstract affection, but much affection in the concrete. " 198 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. produce on the feelings of others. Defective sympathy often comes from the inattention of the child, who does not take into account the feelings of others. He would be more atfectionate, more loving, if he knew just how nmch his disobedience and his faults grieved those who love him. Then make him reflect, either on the pain he caused his parents by his bad conduct or on the pleasure he has given them by his gooil conduct. The day the child has formed a just idea of the consequences of his conduct he will really experience the delights of sympathy and affection ; he will seek his pleasure in the pleasure of others ; he Avill have passed the narrow circle of selfishness. 208. The Generation of Feelings one by Another. — If it is true that feelings are communicated from one heart to another, it is not less true that by a sort of interior generation a feeling once excited in the soul gives birth to other feelings. The different affections form as it were a chain. If the child seizes one end of it, he will easily go from one link to another, and the entire chain will pass through his hands. At first let us appeal to the simplest feelings, those which are most familiar ; let us kindle some flame in the child's heart ; we shall see this flame gradually gaining ground; and little by little it will extend to the whole soul. " Cliilflren who see their father and mother love each other will also love one another. In a home where aft'ectioii reigns, they are bathed in it and perspire it at every pore. Before they have learned to speak, children read affection in the eyes of father and mother ; and this affection children transmit to everything that surrounds them."^ 1 Champfleury, Les Enfants, p. 138. CULTURE OF THE FEELINGS. 199 If he has begun by loving his family, be assured that the child will also love, when the time comes, his friends, his fellow-citizens, and the whole human race. The affectionate son, the kind companion, will also be by a sort of happy fatality an ardent citizen, a patriot, a good and generous man. It is not filial affection, but family selfishness, that sometimes turns aside the citizen from loving his own country as he ought. 209, The Feeling of Pleasure and Pain. — Pleasure is the basis of all sensibility. It is by the vivacity of the pleas- ure which the child is capable of feeling that his degree of sensibility will be measured. We think we love others for their own sake ; but in reality we love them for the pleasure we find in loving them. When personal, selfish interests are concerned, it is still more true that the pleasure we experi- ence is the basis and the purpose of the feeling. In one sense, it might be asserted that the education of the feelings wholly consists either in developing or in regu- lating the child's feeling of pleasure. But there is pleasure and pleasure. By the side of the gross enjoyments of the senses there are the pure emotions of the heart. Through the development of the intelligence, education will at last succeed in making the higher pleas- ures more and more predominate over the attractions of material enjoyment. To put the book in place of the wine- cup, to replace sensation by idea, — such, according to Con- dorcet, is the fundamental problem of popular education ; or if not by idea, at least by sentiment. Between the life of sensation and the intellectual life there is an intermediary more accessible to the multitude ; this is the life of the senti- ments, of the emotions of the heart, of family and social affections, of the sacred joys of patriotism. It is, however, a question whether education should have 200 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. a tendency to increase the child's aptitude to feel pleasure and pain vividly, of whatever nature they may be. According to Kant, the culture of the feelings of pleas- ure or of pain should be purely negative. The case of a child who takes pleasure in nothing is wholly exceptional. The feeling of pleasure is too much in conformity with nature to make it necessary to excite it. There should be only precau- tions to be taken against a tendency naturally so powerful. "There is no need," says the German philosopher, " to mollify the feelings. The propensity for pleasure is more vexatious to men than all the evils of life." ^ Surely there is nothing good to be expected from soft and effeminate natures which can act only under the impulse of pleasure. We do not believe, with Fenelon, that every- thing is to be done in education with an eye to pleasure-giving, and that the teacher's ideal is to have "a cheerful face" and to provide " cheerful conversation." Without believing that pain is inseparable from effort, — for there are efforts that are joyous, in which the display of activity redoubles pleasure, — we grant that effort is sometimes painful, afflic- tive. Now effort is the condition of progress, the instru- ment of education. " Let us fight against soft impressibleness in children ; but let us not forget, on the other hand, that insensibility is the worst of all faults. What can be expected of those dullish children whom nothing moves, who can neither laugh, nor even smile, whom pleasure does not excite ? On the contrary, everything is to be expected of children who are inclined to joyousness, and whom pleasure inspires, but on the condition that we know how to direct, little by little, towards the good, towards the objects worthy of being loved, this need of enjoyment and this ardor for pleasure." ^ Kant, op. cit., p. 225. CULTUKE OF THE FEELINGS. 201 210. Excitation of Personal Feelings. — " Sentiment will develop itself unaided," says Gautliey, "when it is con- cerned with self-love." In fact, it seems at first sight that the selfish feelings need only a negative, repressive discipline which merely tempers their exaggeration ; and yet all who have had the management of children know that in certain cases education should assume, even with the personal feel- ings, its normal function, which consists in spurring, in stim- ulating. In fact, there are natures so languid and sleepy that education should intervene to animate them, to excite them to self-love and to ambition. "The egoistic impulses," says Mr. Sully, "may even be deficient and require positive stimulation. There are listless and lethargic children whom it is well to try and arouse to self-assertion. In their case it may be desirable to seek to quicken tlie feelings of pride, ambition, and (in extreme cases) even the distinctly anti- social feeling of antagouism and delight in beating others. . . . Even when there is no natural deficiency hi these feelings, the education has not so much to repress them as to direct them to higher objects or aspects of objects. He seeks to transform them by refining them. Thus he aims at leading the child up from the fear of physical evil to the fear of moral evil ; from the enjoy- ments of bodily conquest to that of mental competition ; from pride in the possession of material objects to pride in the posses- sion of intellectual qualities. " ^ 211. The Passions. — To tell the truth, the study of the passions is not a pedagogical subject. In fact, the pas- sions, which are exalted, exclusive inclinations, and which have been defined as "habits of the sensibility," imperious and violent habits, are developed only in the progress of life. His young age and his very inexperience shelter the child from those profound disturbances, those diseases of the 1 Sully, op. cit, p. 506. 202 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. soul. It is in ethics, not in pedagogy, that we must look for the means to cure them ; just as it pertains to logic to correct the sophisms that are rooted in conventional thought. However, if education is not directly concerned with the passions, since in general tliey do not exist at the school age, it ought to anticipate their appearance. From child- hood, care should be taken lest the soul become a soil already prepared for the unfolding of the passions by a preference accorded to certain emotions and by the exclu- sive development of certain tastes. The best guaranty, for this purpose, is to develop the sensibility in all directions. It is hardly to be feared that passion will ever gain the ascen- dency over a soul open to all noble sentiments, which has learned to share its faculty of loving among the different objects worthy of its love. However, there are other precautions to be taken, which M. Marion has happily summed up in these terms : "Vigilance is better than repression and advice. The little child must be carefully guarded, and everything done that he may grow up in perfect moral health. This dispenses with untimely recriminations and useless reproaches. Sparing children the occasions for falling, watching over their conduct without allow- ing them to suspect our oversight, keeping from their sight bad books and bad sights, choosing the companions with whom they associate, allowing them to hear only decorous conversation, giving them only good examples, inspiring them as much as possible with a feeling of their responsibility, — in a word, fashioning and directing their moral growth in such a way that they will be healthy and strong when the hour of the passions comes, — this is the work of a well-conducted education." ^ 1 M. Marion, op. cit., p. 249. CHAPTEE X. MORAL EDUCATION. 212. Moral Education Proper. — We shall not fol- low the example of those educators who, with respect to moral education, include in their treatises the whole theory of duty, the whole of ethics, just as they have introduced the whole of psychology into their treatment of intellectual education. Our subject is limited ; it is concerned simply with the inquiry how nature of herself develops the moral faculties, and how education intervenes in its tiu'n to train them, to hasten their unfolding, and to perfect their develop- ment. It is not the purpose here to set forth the different applications of moral power, but we liave simply to inquire by what means this power is called into being and grad- ually created. 213. The Moral Faculties. — The moral faculties are distinguished from the intellectual faculties in that they tend to action, and not to knowledge. These are active, not spec- ulative faculties. The moral faculties form the character ; the intellectual faculties form the mind. The former lead us to virtue ; the latter to knowledge. Moreover, thei-e are to be distinguished in that aggregate of moral faculties commonly called the conscience three different series of facts : 1. The facts of the serisihility, not of that general sensibility of which we have already spoken, which is diffused in the 203 204 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. affections of every sort, but of that which attaches us to the good, which makes us love duty, which affects us in the presence of what is good. 2. The facts of the intelligence, the practical reason, which suggests to us the ideas of good and evil, of merit and demerit, — in a word, moral ideas. 3. The fact of the ivill, the energy which determines us to the action which we know to be good, the good-will which inclines us to virtue. In other terms, we must at the same time love, know, and will the good. It is not enough that our enlightened intelligence permits us to distinguish what is good from what is bad. Beyond this, and above all, it is necessary that a strong will give us the means of executing the decis- ions of our moral judgment ; and it is also necessary, in order that the moral effort may be less painful, that feeling come to our aid, that the imperious orders of the reason become, as often as possible, the gracious solicitations of the heart. 214. Moral Education and the Teaching of Mor- als. — Moral education is one thing, and the teaching of morals quite another.^ A course in morals, a body of pre- cepts, is certainly of great service in training a man to be good. We do not think the ancient philosophy was wholly wrong when it affirmed that virtue can be taught. It can not be useless to call the attention of the child, in a didac- tic way, to the grand truths of conscience, to the distribu- tion of duties, the diverse obligations of life ; but neverthe- less the teaching of morals is but a small part of moral edu- cation. This education is really going on at every stage and mo- ment of life. It begins at birth, through the examples which 1 See Part Second of this work. MORAL EDUCATION. 205 parents transmit to their children ; it is continued at school, through the habits that are formed there, through the senti- ments which are there developed, and especially through the discipline that is in vogue there ; finally, it is prolonged during the whole of life, through the effort of the will and of personal education. This education, moreover, is a complex work, in which there co-operate even more tlian in intellectual education, not only the child's own nature, his native dispositions and particular tastes, but the different characters of all the persons who surround him, his parents, his friends, his teachers, and in general the influences, perhaps as profound, though more unnoticed, of the social environment in which he lives. It cannot, then, be seriously proposed to confine moral education to the narrow circle of a school course, of a series of lessons, whatever science may be introduced into them. "The purj)ose of moral education is not to add to a pupil's knowledge, but to affect his will ; it moves more than it demon- strates ; before acting on the emotional nature, it proceeds rather from the heart than from the reason ; it does not undertake to analyze all the reasons of the moral act, but tries above all else to produce it, to have it repeated, to make of it a habit which shall govern the life. Especially in the primary school, it is not a science, but an art, — the art of inclining the free will towards the good. " 1 215. Importance of Moral Education. — Is there need at this time of insisting on the especial importance of moral education? Necessary at all times, it is still more so in a society like ours, where morality ought to be developed in proportion to the development of liberty itself. " The establishment of the republican regime," says the author 1 See the Act establishing common schools. 206 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. of a recent book, " by reducing the part of arbitrary authority which is made imperative, demands in return a proportional increase of that moral authority which is accepted in its stead. " Being less governed by an external will, it is necessary that men know better how to govern themselves ; what they once did through force and through fear, they must learn to do by free will and through duty. " ^ 216. Superiority OF Moral Grandeur. — "We have said in another place that instruction or intellectual power plays an important part in the development of moral power. It sometimes happens, however, that morality does not accom- pany learning, nor even genius. " As a moral man," says Mr. Blackie, "the first Napoleon lived and died very poor and very small. ... It was an easy thing for Lord Byron to be a great poet ; it was merely indulging his nature ; he was an eagle, and must fly ; but to have curbed his wilful humor, soothed his fretful discontent, and learned to behave like a reasonable being and a gentleman, — that was a difficult matter, which he does not seem ever seriously to have attempted. His life, therefore, with all his genius and fits of occasional sublimity, was on the whole a terrible failure." ^ The same might be said of Rousseau, capable on occasion of heroic devotion, but powerless to apply himself to the ordinary duties of life ; a man of incomparable genius, but scarcely an honorable man. Then let us put morality in the first rank of our solici- tudes, because it is the first need of society. "We may even conceive a society composed of honorable men without instruction ; but we cannot conceive a society formed of edu- cated men without honor. "^ 1 M. Vessiot, De I' Education a I'^cole. 2 Blackie, op. cit., p. 57, 58. 8 M. Vessiot, op. cit, p. 13. MOKAL EDUCATION. 207 217. Is THE Child Good or Bad ? — The ideal is to make of the child a moral being who carries within himself his own rule of conduct, who governs himself by his own will, and who knows no other rule than the law of right, and who has nc^will except for the good. But before nature and education have succeeded in com- pletely developing the germs of the moral consciousness, before the child comes to be virtuous, many years elapse ; and during this time all we can demand of the child is to be innocent. Our only thought is to prevent him from doing evil, or at most to cultivate the instinctive dispositions wliich urge him to praiseworthy actions. We can impose on liim only an exterior morality, so to speak, while waiting for the reason and the will to become, in his mature soul, the solid principles of an interior morality, freely desired and realized. Up to what point does the nature of the child adapt itself to this first education ? Do we find in him only instinctive tendencies towards the good? Or, on the contrary, must we expect a stubborn resistance on the part of a nature deeply corrupt and vicious? In other terms, is the child good or bad? The general direction of education varies according to the reply given to this question. We are either constrained to look with favor on a nature assumed to be good, or our only thought is to repress a nature originally bad. " Education, " says Madame Guizot, " has long been a system of hostility against human nature. It was merely a question of correcting and punishing. It seemed that the only question was to take from children the nature which God had given them, in oi'der to give them another fashioned by the teacher." ^ On the other hand, especially since Rousseau and the 1 Madame Guizot, op. cit., Lettre XII. 208 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY, paradoxes of the Emile upon the absolute iunocence and the perfect goodness of the child, education tends to replace punishments by encouragements, and the "sycophants of infancy," according to the expression of Madame Necker de Saussure, think only of avoiding everything that restricts and constrains, in order to leave to nature her full and free expansion. 218. Opposing Opinions. — For our part, we shall avoid the absolute opinions of both the optimists and the pessi- mists, who in turn present to us infant nature under colors the most cheerful or the most sombre. " Everything is good," cries Rousseau, " as it comes from the hands of the Author of nature. The first movements of nature are always right." On the other hand, " we are born the children of wrath," says St. Paul. "All are born for damnation," proclaims Saint Augustine. And the Jansenists zealously echo the sentiment. "You ought to consider your children," wrote Varet, "as all inclined and borne on toward evil. Their inclinations are all corrupt ; and not being governed by reason, tliey will cause them to find pleasure and enjoyment only in the things which lead them to vice." It is between these two extremes, between these two theses equally false, of the radical perversity and of the absolute goodness of man, that we must look for the truth. 219. The Child is neither Good nor Bad. — Correctly speaking, the child has not yet a moral character, and we might think the question settled by this observation of Kant: " It is a question," he says, " whether man is by his nature MORAL EDUCATION. 209 morally good or bad. I reply that he is neither, for naturally he is not a moral being ; he becomes such only when he elevates his reason to the ideas of duty and of law. He could not become morally good save by means of virtue, — that is to say, a con- straint exercised over himself, although he may be innocent as long as his passions are slumbering." But Kant somewhat mistakes the question, which is, not whether the acts of the child are inspired l)y a moral inten- tion, good or bad, — which no one would dare to assert, — but whether, without willing it, and by an unconscious inclination of his nature, the child is led to what is good or to what is bad. The truth is that he is led to both, and that in his composite nature vicious dispositions are associated with legitimate and praiseworthy instincts. We grant, however, that the inclinations of the child are not, for the most part, evil in themselves. " What is evil in them," wrote Madame Guizot, " is not the inclination, but its inordinate manifestation." And Kant had said to the same effect : ' '• The sole cause of evil is that nature is not subjected to rules." 220. The Assumed Evil Instincts of Childhood. — Let us now examine some of the accusations brought against the child. He has been greatly traduced. "The child," said La Bruyere, "is haughty, disdainful, irascible, envious, inquisi- tive, selfish, lazy, fickle, etc." It is a pleasure to know that this litany of slanders emanates from a bachelor. With- out intending to flatter the child, we may assert that his faults come, some from the bad education which he receives, others from his ignorance, and only a very few from an innate tendency to evil. It is said, for example, that the child is cruel. " That age is without pity," said La Fontaine, who was less affectionate 210 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. to children than to animals. This saying is true, but the most often this harshness is the result of a lack of intelli- gence. Children are without pity, because they do not under- stand the evil which they do. They torture a bird, because, like little Cartesians, they do not know that the bird suffers. Another instinct of the child, it is said, is theft. The child resembles the savage, who has only a confused notion of property. "He has not exactly the instinct of theft," remarks M. Legouve, " but he has not the instinct of other's property. In his case, the distinction between mine and thine often consists in taking the thine in order to make of it tlie mine. But is it to be wondered at that the child, who has not studied the code, who has not, like Rousseau's Emile, encountered a gardener Robert to explain to him the origin of property, readily consents to take for liis own use what pleases him, but does not belong to him? In other cases it is the grown man who, by his lack of sense or by his example, inculcates on the child his own faults. Is it childish vanity that we hear mentioned ? Must not parents be blamed for this? This is stinmlated by parents who on improper occasions excite the self-esteem of their children by exaggerating their merits. There is a well-known story of a little girl who, liaving been praised by her mother for a childish repartee, said in the presence of a lady visitor, '" Mamma, vou have not told Madame what I said this morn- ing!" Children are charged with gluttony ! I firmly believe that Rousseau was right on this point, and that it is society, in this case, which corrupts nature. In fact, does the greedy child do more than desire his share of the dainties which load the table of his parents? If the example of intemperance were not set before him, he would be more temperate than we think. MORAL EDUCATION. 211 So falsehood is too often but the result of our bad man- agement. " Now who has broken this piece of furniture?" we cry in a rage. Thoroughly frightened, tlie little culprit replies, " I did not do it ! " The child who is treated mildly becomes confiding, but, terrified by oui* severity, he seeks a refuge in falsehood. Moreover, it is not sufficient, in order to judge the child justly, to seek in his ignorance or in his bad education the explanation and the excuse for the most of his faults. We must go further, and show what good qualities, what senti- ments of justice, liberality, pity, and goodness he sometimes exhibits. But we have said enough to justify those who, in judging the child, would avoid on the one hand extravagant praise and on the other passionate condemnation. 221. The Evil Instincts of the Child. — Let us ac- knowledge the fact, however, that certain instincts of child- hood are real tendencies to evil. It is inaccurate to say that there are in nature germs only of the good. Envy and anger are natural, but they are essentially bad. Here tlie evil is in the inclination, not in the inordinate manifestation of the inclination. Madame Necker de Saussure dwells, not without regret, she says, upon the vices inherent in the nature of the child. "I speak of that momentary demoralization of the will which finds a pleasure, a particular savor, in the idea of violatin*;' a rule. . . . We observe in children something besides weakness, something besides inability to submit to the sacrifices required by duty ; we see delight in throwing off the yoke of duty." ^ To the same effect Mr. Bain devotes a special article to the " anti-social and malign emotions." To those who would deny the existence of evil instincts, 1 Madame Necker de Saussure, I., p. 304. 212 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. and would explain what is evil by the intemperance of in- clinations good in themselves, it suffices to observe that the very intemperance is a principle of evil ; that this tendency to run riot is in nature, and consequently that human nature is not wholly good. 222. Repression of Vicious Tendencies. — Moral edu- cation, then, will not be merely a work of excitation and of culture ; it will also have to oppose and to repress. At first, the evil will be opposed by favoring the good. There is no better way of correcting evil inclinations than by cultivating those which are good ; nor of fighting indolence than by exciting to labor ; nor of preventing malevolence than by teaching to be good. It is to the same effect that Madame Guizot wrote : " I have always been persuaded that education had no power against evil, except the taste for the good. " We do not repress an evil inclination, but we fortify a good one ; and I know of no means of extirpating a fault except to make a virtue grow in its place." ^ " In certain cases, however, we must resort to direct repression. The method of substitution does not always suffice. Special remedies are required for definitely marked diseases. It is here that discipline intervenes, with its retinue of punishments and its necessary means of coercion." ^ Patient with trivial faults which would be aggravated by calling the child's attention to them and by punishing them prematurely, discipline will be severe in the case of giave faults. It will prevent their return, and, it will chastise them sharply if it cannot prevent them, if an obstinate resistance makes exhortations and reprimands useless. 223. The Conscience or Practical Reason. — There 1 Madame Guizot, op. cit, I., p. 105. ^ See Part Second of this work. MOKAL EDUCATION. 213 comes a moment in the life of the child when it does not suffice to correct his evil inclinations and to awaken his beneficent instincts ; but when we must excite his moral consciousness and create in him the idea of a general rule of conduct, the idea of duty. Nature has planted the germ of this idea in the intelli- gence, and it is to the reason, — that is, to the highest of the intellectual faculties, — that psychology ascribes the origin of moral conceptions. Reason is the faculty of intellectual ideas, necessary and absolute ; it is the natural light which enlightens every man coming into this world. From the first dawn of his intelligence, the child is already under the direction of the reason ; but this reason is almost unconscious. The child would be incapable of formulating the rational laws of which his judgments are the application. Thus a little boy of seven or eight years looks with his father for a lost object, and not finding it, he cries, "But yet it must certainly be that something is always some- where ! " Is not this already to express, in an artless way and with- out succeeding in rendering a complete account of it, the necessary existence of an infinite space in which are con- tained all material things ? And so, when a child on whom we have tried to impress the idea of the creation of the world and the idea of the Creator, replies obstinately, " But before God what was there?" is it not evident that without knowing it his young mind obeys the principle of causality, which requires that every existence should be connected with an antecedent cause? The examples which we have just cited are connected with what Kant called the pure reason, that is, the theoretical and speculative reason, that which guides us in scientific research. 214 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. But there are other manifestations of the reason, — those which rekite to practical life and to moral conduct. In this sense the reason is nothing ])ut the moral consciousness, the belief in an obligatory law which all ought to obey. Since Kant, philosophers usually give to this the name of practical reason. Let us see if under this form the reason also mani- fests itself in the actions of the child. 224. The Moral Sense in the Child. — At what mo- ment may it be said that there appears in the child the essential moral idea, —that is, the distinction between good and evil, detached from every foreign element? Certain observers of childhood seem to us to have ascribed too much upon this point to the childish intelligence. M. Perez believes that the objective notion of good and evil can be verified at the age of six or seven months. Darwin declares that he observed the moral sense in children at the age of thirteen months. For ourselves, we are convinced that neither at thirteen months nor at two years, nor even much later, is the child in a condition actuall}^ to discriminate good from evil. In order to believe him capable of morality in the strict sense of the word, it would first be necessaiy to accept a loose definition of the moral consciousness, — a definition which invalidates and attenuates its import ; it would then be necessary to resort to an illusory interpretation of certain acts in child-life. Here are the facts reported by Darwin ^ and by Perez. ^ Doddy, aged thirteen months, seemed to notice the reproaches of his father, who called him a bad boy. At the age of two years and five months, Doddy, who had been left alone, helped himself to sugar, a thing which he knew was for- 1 See in the Revue Sclentifiqiie the account by Darwin. 2 M. Pe'rez, op. cit. MOEAL EDUCATION. 215 bidden. His father met liiiu at the moraeut when he came from the dining-room, and noticed something strange in his conduct. " I think," adds Darwin, '-that this appearance was to be attributed to the struggle between the pleasure of eating the sugar and the beginning of remorse.'' The examples given by Perez are of the same character. A child of eleven months obeyed when his father said, in a loud voice, " Keep still ! " This child had not yet walked alone, but his father caused him to take a few steps toward him by offering him a half of a peach. It requires much good will to decorate with the epithet moral, actions in which are manifested merely the desire to gratify some sense, the fear of suffering associated by the memory with certain actions, or at most the distinction be- tween paternal caresses and threats. The association of ideas and the memory, concurring in a conscious feeling of pleasure and pain, abundantly suffices to explain the relative obedience yielded by the child, and we decline to 1)elieve that a baby is in possession of the moral sense from the moment he obeys throngli habit or fear. 225. Development of the Moral Consciousness. — Not that it is necessary to deny the importance of these early sensible and utilitarian distinctions in the future acquisition of moral distinctions. Nature proceeds by successive rough drafts. For the moral consciousness, as for the attention, we must be content at first with appearances, with a fore- shadowing of the real state which will be attained only long afterwards. At first, the good is what pleases and the bad what dis- pleases the child. Let it be so managed that he shall be pleased with onh^ what is good. Later on, the good is what father and mother order, and the evil what they forbid. Manage in such a way that the child loves or fears his 216 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. parents enough to yield with docility to their will. Still later, when the intelligence is capable of reflection, the good is what is useful, the evil what is hurtful. As far as possi- ble make the child's duty accord with his interest. Finally, at a still higher stage, the good is what men approve, what the civil law requires ; the evil, what is universally con- demned. Make the child sensitive to public opinion. Teach him to blush, and to feel shame for every act which incurs general reproach. It is not till the final term of its evolution that the conscience comes to grasp the idea of a moral good existing by itself, conformed to the dignity of man, which must be practiced for the sole reason that it is good. But before the moral idea is detached from every foreign element, — from the seductions of pleasure, from the fear or the love inspired by parents, from the solicitations of interest, from the respect inspired by public opinion, how many halting-places there are to pass through ! What painful and slow elaboration to attain the ideal of a conscience saluting a sovereign law, bowing before it and voluntarily conforming to its require- ments ! 226. The FIRST Manifestations of Morality. — Moral- ity, in the strict sense of the word, is not the act of a being whose conduct is simply in accord with the moral law ; but it is the characteristic of a person who intentionally and because he wills it, submits to that law, and knowingly accomplishes actions which he judges good. Must we think that the child is absolutely a stranger to morality, thus understood? Some facts seem to prove the contrary. "All the niceties of the moral sentiments," says M. Egger, "are not the product of education and the privilege of a more advanced age. For example, the instinct of remorse and of MORAL EDUCATION. 217 reparation is usually exhibited by children after little revolts of the will. The child is never in better spirits than after these storms ; and it is credible that he shows the intention of having us forget the sorrow caused by his disobedience." ^ M. Perez cites, from the Italian philosopher L. Ferri, the case of a child five years old, who, having been praised by his mother, said to her, " Mamma, I wish I could make you still happier ; I wish I could always be good ; tell me, why can't I always be good? " ^ A still more probable case is that of a child noticed also by M. Perez, who thought he was not sufficiently punished for a fault he had committed, and by a sort of spontaneous feeling of justice demanded additional correction. 227. Education of the Moral Consciousness. — There are, then, in nature herself, the germs of morality. It would be impossible, in fact, to suggest the idea of the good, if the reason did not contain the principle of it. " The child carries within himself the moral law, at first unconsciously, in the latent state ; then little by little it dis- engages itself, rises from the mysterious depths of consciousness, and makes its presence felt by mute agitations; then it finds a voice, it speaks, it commands, it signifies its will by injunctions more and more clear, more and more emphatic ; and finally, when it is misunderstood, by that indefinable suffering, now dull, now sharp and piercing, which is called remorse." ^ Surely the natural evolution of the individual tends of itself to produce moral conceptions ; but the educator can aid this development. For this purpose it is necessary that he exercise the child in judging of the actions of others ; that in accurate and striking narratives he show him men who have 1 M. Egger, op. cit, p. 68. 2 M. Perez, La Psychologic de I 'enfant, p. 343. 8 M. Vessiot, op. cit, p. 33. *218 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. clone good or evil ; that he be required to express his opin- ion on tlie virtues and vices of others, and invited to give liis reasons why such an action seems to him good and another bad. The child should also be allowed to accomplish at his own risk and peril the actions suggested to him by his own initiative ; he should be accustomed at an early hour to make decisions, and thus acquire the feeling of his own responsibility ; and should be furnished with frequent occa- sions for overcoming his inclinations and for conquering his evil instincts.^ In other terms, we must appeal as early as possible to the experience of the child. Moral conceptions cannot be trans- mitted from without like geometrical truths ; they ought to spring spontaneously from personal reflection and internal emotions. Conscience will l)e slow to appear in children who have not been accustomed to act for themselves or to judge of the actions of others. " It is within himself," continues the author whom we have just quoted, " that the child carries his rule of conduct ; it is within himself that he must be taught to look for it ; and when the teacher commands, he should try to make it understood that it is not in his own name that he speaks, but in the name of the moral law which is inscribed in the heart of tlie child, and of which he, the teacher, is but the echo and the interpreter. To lead the child to behave in the absence of his teacher, and of all those who have the authority to make him do right and punish him for having done wrong, just as he would beliave in then- presence ; within himself to establish a point of support against 1 This was the method followed by Pestalozzi. " Instead of giving his children direct lessons in morals, he shrewdly took advantage of all the events which occiu-red in the house. They were so numerous that each day presented many occasions for making felt the difference between good and evil, between what is just and what is unjust. ( I'ompee, Etudes sur Pestalozzi, p. 250.) MORAL EDUCATION. 219 himself; to make him see that he can succeed in governing him- self without the help of others, and to lead him insensibly to do without that exterior direction ; this is the true method of education. " ^ In other terms, it is necessary that every moral virtue taught to children should be intimately connected, as Pestalozzi said, " with an intuitive and sensible experience which is their own." ^ 228. Difficulties of this Education. — There is such a distance between the natural state of the child, caring simply for his pleasures and his interest, and the normal state of an enlightened conscience, that at first thought we might be tempted to despair of success and to believe impos- sible the evolution which leads the aiind to the conception of the good. But in this delicate work nature has provided us with powerful auxiliaries ; and if it is difficult to suggest to the child the abstract idea of duty, it is very much easier to accustom him practically to fulfil certain duties. Especially when it is a question of duties towards other men, the child will be aided by his natural feelings of sympathy and benevolence ; and from the practice of these duties there will gradually be evolved the idea of duty in itself. 1 M. Vessiot, op. cit, p. 35. 2 " Elementary moral education," said Pestalozzi, " comprises three distinct parts : it is first necessary to give children a moral conscious- ness by awakening in them pure feelings ; it is next necessary to accustom them by practice to conquer themselves in order to devote themselves to whatever is just and good ; and finally, they must be led to make, by reflection and comparison, a just idea of law and of the moral duties which are incumbent on them from their position and their siirroundings." (Roger de Guimps, Histoire de Pestalozzi, p. 206.) 220 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " It is from the first movements of the heart," exclaims Rous- seau, " that arise the first voices of tlie conscience ; from the feelings of love and hate are born the first notions of good and evil ; justice and goodness are not mei-e al)stract terms conceived by the understanding, but real affections of the soul enlightened by reason." The virtues relative to personal duties will be acquired with more difficulty ; but here again the natural emotions, such as self-love and the sentiment of the useful, will come in aid of moral education. We are in no wise forbidden to show the child that his interest and his duty are in accord in imposing on him moderation in his desires and resistance to his evil inclinations. But, above all and in all periods of the moral life, example will be the great teachei*. Before imposing a moral law on the obedience of the child as a rule of command, it must be proposed to his imitation as an insinuating example. A child is above all else an imitator, and the great secret of moral education is to know how to take advantage of this instinct. Let us not forget that perhaps the most beautiful book of religious ethics is entitled, " Imitation of Jesus Christ. " 229. Power of the Imitative Instinct in the Child. — The power of the imitative instinct in the child is due to several causes ; and first of all to his ignorance. Having as yet at his disposal but a small amount of knowledge and a very slender stock of ideas, the child is at the mercy of the perceptions which incite him on all sides. His supple thought, free from prepossessions, responds to the call of exterior images, and follows without resistance the current into which it is urged by the impressions which strike it. On the other hand, the child is weak ; he is lacking in per- sonality. He needs to act, but his will does not yet exist. MOEAL EDUCATION. 221 Powerless to act from his own initiative, he acts in accord- ance witli what he sees others do. His weakness is the principal cause of his imitative disposition. Sympathy is still another source of the imitative instinct. We all have a secret tendency to put ourselves in agreement, in our sentiments and actions, with the men who surround us, and particularly with those whom we love. To love any one is to desire to resemble him. The child who feels an ardent affection for his companions is naturally inclined to imitate them. The more causes of sympathy there are, such as resemblances in condition or age, the more powerfully will the imitative instinct manifest itself. Finally, let us add that in imitation, however slavish it may appear, there is sometimes, as it were, a first soaring of the child's liberty, of his aspiration after the ideal. The child wishes to rise superior to himself ; and this is why he will imitate by preference, after his companions, his supe- riors and his teachers. " All men have a tendency towards imitation, but this is par- ticularly noticeable in the child. Not yet having a pronounced individuality and a strong character, he does not suffice for him- self. He easily yields to an impulsion from without. The per- sons who surround him act upon him more than he acts upon them, and he is readily moulded after the pattern which they set before him, especially if they are older, stronger, more capable, and more experienced than he is."^ 230. Historical Examples. — If it is true that none of our actions are lost to us, that each of our deeds, good or bad, has its effect upon our future conduct, and aids in directing the current of our life towards the good or towards the bad, it is also certain that the actions of other men, of those who have preceded us on this earth, 1 Gauthey, op. cit., II., p. 388. 222 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. as well as of those who are living around us^ exercise upon our character, however little they may be present to our imagination, a profound influence. The past sheds light upon the present. Souls that have disappeared live again in the souls of the new generation. Tlie examples of the ancients mould the minds of those who have just come upon the theatre of life, and, as some one has said, "the dead govern the living." Present to the child, then, all the beautiful and noble lessons which history teaches. By narratives and por- traitures infuse into him the virtues which have made his ancestors illustrious. "Towards the achievement of a-jioble life," says an English teacher, " there is nothing more important than an imagination well decorated with heroic pictures ; in other words, there is no surer method of becoming good, and it may be great also, than an early familiarity with the lives of great and good men. . . . There is no kind of sermon so effective as the example of a great man. . . . Let us, therefore, turn our youthful imaginations into great pictiu-e-galleries and Walhallas of the heroic souls of all times and of all places ; and we shall be incited to follow after good and be ashamed to commit any sort of baseness in the direct view of such a ' cloud of witnesses.' " ^ Of course it is not proposed to make of our pupils so many heroes, — the occasions for heroism are rare ; but still we must not fear to present to children a very elevated moral ideal. He who has been made capable of being heroic on one solemn occasion, will be more surely virtuous at every hour of his life. Tlu'U familiarize the mind which is to be made moral "with the real blood and bone of human heroism which the select pages of biography present." From this high moral excitation something will be reflected 1 Blackie, op. cit, pp. 81, 82. MORAL EDUCATION. 223 even on . the most common and the most hnmble social conditions. But history holds in reserve, in order to offer them to the imitation of those who study it, very many examples of familiar and simple virtues accessible to aU. The Lives of Plutarch, to cite but this author, contain a treasure of beautiful models by which the whole world may profit, and which are, as has been said, " the very matter out of which every moral force will always be made." 231. Living Examples. — But there is something which is worth even more than the example of the dead ; this is intercourse with the living. The child prefers to imitate those whom he sees, those whom he meets. The finest historical narratives are cold, compared with the real and present example of a virtuous life. A good man not only assures his own virtues, but contributes to the virtue of others by the magnetic influence which he diffuses about him wherever he goes, and by the beneficent radiance of his moral qualities. There is a contagion of good, as well as a contagion of evil and of disease. Some of the best souls in this world have acquired their moral superiority less by an effort of their will than by a natural imitation of the good people who suiTound them. How many families there are in which virtue is a tradition, an inheritance, which is transmitted from parents to children as surely and as directly as a patrimony ! Marcus Aurelius, the wise Roman Emperor, relates in his Thoughts that he was indebted to several members of his family for some of his best qualities. " My uncle," he says, " taught me patience ; from my father I inherit modesty ; to my mother I owe my piety." Happy the men who, like Marcus Aurelius, breathe from the day of their birth an atmosphere of virtue, and to 224 THEORETICAL" PEDAGOGY. acquire good morals have only to submit to the gracious and natural incitements of example. " Of all the ways whereby Children are to be instructed and their manners formed, the plainest, easiest, and most efficacious is to set before their Eyes the Examples of those things you would have them do or avoid. . . . Virtues and Vices can by no Words be so plainly set before their understandings as the Actions of other men will show them, when you direct their observation, and bid them view this or that good or bad Quality in their Practice. . . . Nothing sinks so gently and so deep into Men's minds as Example." ^ 232. Examples and Pkecepts. — It must not be imag- ined, however, that example, wliich is precept in action, absolves us absolutely from abstract precept, which appeals to the mind. It is well to present to the child, in a clear and expressive form, the principal maxims of duty, and to nourish his memory with beautiful moral sentences. Always present to the imagination, these formulas will lend us support against the temptations of pleasure and the sophisms of passion ; they will preserve us on many occa- sions of weakness. " It is well," says an author whom we have often quoted, " to carry about with us the purifying influence of a high ideal of human conduct, fervidly and powerfully expressed. Superstitious persons carry amulets externally on their breasts; carry you a select store of holy texts within, and you will be much more effectively armed against the powers of evil than any most absolute monarch behind a bristling body-guard. Such texts you may find occurring in many places, from the Kalidasas and Sakyamunis of the East, to Pythagoras, Plato, Aristotle, and Epictetus in the West ; but if you are wise, and above the seduc- tion of showy and pretentious novelties, you will store your mem- ory early in youth with the golden texts of the Old and New Testaments." ^ 1 John Locke, op. cit., p. 81. '^ Blackie, op. cit., p. 79. MORAL EDUCATION. 225 We do not believe in the magic power of words ; but who does not know by experience what power there is in a moment of moral crisis, in an idea suddenly evoked from a maxim or from a rule of conduct, especially if this precept is associated with the recollection of the one who has transmit- ted it to us, — the image of a mother, a father, a venerated teacher ? But to be efficacious the precept must deeply penetrate the soul ; it must not remain merely on the lips or in the memory, but must become, so to speak, a living part of the conscience. vWe must not be content with a borrowed morality, founded on maxims learned out of books. " What would be thought," said the wise Plutarch, " of a man who, going to his neighbor in search of five, and finding the hearth all aglow, should stay there to warm himself and no longer think of returning to his own home ? " This is the picture of a man who is content to recite well- conned moral discourses ; who to be sure of conducting him- self properly has always to consult a book, as a sort of gospel ; and *who has not been able to kindle in his own heart an inner fire of noble inspirations. 233. The Love of the Good. — Exercised and instructed by his own experience, accustomed to take account of his own actions, to judge the actions of others, and to weigh the consequences of them, initiated by his acts into the joy of duty accomplished, encouraged by the examples which have been set before him, sustained by the exhortations and precepts of his teachers, the child will rise little by little to the moral life. In this complex work, of which Mr. Bain has said that "the conditions to be fulfilled are so numerous that it is hardly possible to indicate with precision the best method to be adopted," the principal part belongs, not to books, not to lessons, but to the character of parents 226 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. and teachers. The moral law cannot be for the child a cold, impersonal al)straction ; it must be made incarnate in a living being. Tlie father, the mother, and the teacher represent to the eyes of the child the moral law ; and they should represent it, not as impassive, unfeeling beings, but as living personalities who are touched at the sight of evil, who are full of affection and tenderness. If religion has such a profound influence upon tlie dcA-elop- ment of morality, it is because it presents to the minds of men the idea of a supreme father, the benefactor of humanity, who by his sovereign will requires virtue of his children. The knowledge of what is good does not suffice ; there must be joined to this the love of what is good. And it is by loving virtuous men set before him for examples, and by loving a divine model of every virtue, that the child will come to love the good himself. CHAPTER XL WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 234. Knowledge and Will. — The more we enlighten the intelligence the more we develop the moral conscious- ness. It suffices to throw a glance over the morals of the ancients and over the morals of the moderns, to judge of the progress which men have gradually made in the knowl- edge of their duties. Men often do wrong through igno- rance of what is right. Moreover, the knowledge of what is right implies in itself a certain power of determination towards the right. To know exactly where one's duty lies is of itself one excellent condition for doing one's duty. Let us admit, however, that knowledge does not suffice, that there must be added to it will or moral energy. How many men are capable of making marvelous dissertations on all the shades of duty, and yet are incapable of becoming virtu- ous men ! They cannot will the good which they know. It is the reason that judges what must be done, but it is the will alone which determines us to do it. The education of the will, then, is one essential part of moral education. 235. Definition op the Will. — In the eighteenth cen- tury the term will was sometimes emplo3'ed to designate all the powers of the soul except tlie intelligence, — the inclinations, the tendencies, the desires ; and Condillac said of the will, " that it comprehends all tlie operations which are born of need." In contemporary psychology the signifi- 227 228 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY, cation of the term " will " is better defined, more fixed ; and the will, or power to do what we wish, properl}- designates the power which the soul has of self-determination, con- sciously and with reflection, spontaneously and freely, towards an act of its own choice. 236. The Will in the Child. — The will thus under- stood is, like the reason, a prerogative of man. Man alone, in the full exercise of all his faculties, is capable of willing. Doubtless the animal and the child are capable of self-de- , termination ; they act, and by an abuse of terms the princi- ple of these determinations and actions is called will. But this irreflective power of determination and action is but a semblance of will. The child is obstinate, but he has no will. In him, as in the animal, action, however spontane- ous it may be, is not master of -itself. Provoked by blind desire, by irresistible need, by disorderly caprice, it is not in possession of itself ; it is but the pale image of the real human will, which reflects, calculates, knows where it goes, and consequently masters itself and governs itself. 237. DiEPERENCE BETWEEN WiLL AND DeSIRE. The will is surely something else than desire. It is not possible to admit, with certain philosophers, that the will is but an ardent and strong desire, just as the attention is but a domi- nant sensation. The will thus understood would not affran- chise us from our inclinations and our passions ; it would be but the consummation of desire. It would be included in the category of passive, fatal dispositions ; it would not be the principle of liberty. Desire is but the solicitation of an agreeable object which procures us pleasure, and thus invites us, and sometimes de- termines us, to go in search of it. The will, on the con- trary, is the resolution which we take of ourselves to accomplish an act, agreeable or disagreeable, as the case may be. WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 229 There are cases where desire and will are in accord, — where we will wliat we desire ; but even then our conscious- ness sharply distinguishes the attraction which the thing- desired exercises on the feelings, from the power which we have of yielding to tliat attraction. In other cases the will is in opposition to desu-e ; and it is then especially that the distinction between the two facts is clear and striking. For example, indolence attracts me and pleases me ; all the pleasures of the far niente haunt my imagination ; all my bodily inclinations incline me to indo- lence ; and yet, sustained by the idea of my interest or of my duty, I resist these impulses ; I will to work, and I set myself to work. How, in this case, and in all analogous cases, can we confound desire and will, the current and the power which ascends the current ? Finally, in other cases, the desire is the only thing ; by its violence it carries away the soul, which has neither the time to reflect nor the power to will ; but the act is then no more voluntary than the mind is truly attentive when it is domi- nated and absorbed by a sensation. The fixity of thought which allows itself to be captivated and made immobile, so to speak, by a powerful impression, is no more attention than the impulse of desire is will. Just as the attention disengages and transports the thought, attaches it to the object which it has chosen, or detaches it from it when it pleases, so the will withholds, arrests, or pursues the act which it has resolved on. 238. Difference between Will and Idea. — But some one will say, if the will is distinguished from desire and from sensibility, it is precisely because it is confounded with idea and with intelligence. In fact, motives borrowed from our prevision, from our reason, are the only ones which can counterbalance the attraction of desire and assure the tri- 230 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. umph of the will ; but because the will grafts itself, so to speak, upon au idea, it is no reason for thinking that it is the same thing as the idea. Does it not happen to us every moment to have a very definite idea of a thing to be done, and yet not to do it, because we do not will to do it? 239. Relation of the Will to the Sensibilities. — But after having shown that the will is something distinct and irreducible, after having proved that it is an inde- pendent power, we must hasten to add that this inde- pendence is not absolute ; that in order to will it is not useless to desire, and that it is necessary to think. Let us not imagine, then, that to prepare in man for the reign of the will, we must destroy in the child the empire of the desires. Children of little sensibility are very likely to become men of little energy. On the contrary, lively, ardent inclinations will be the cradle of a strong will, provided reflection co-operates with them.^ Let us excite the desires of the child, while giving them direction ; let us teach him to love more and more what he ought to love ; and, enlightened by intelligence, his desires will be transformed into wills. But the will, however energetic we may suppose it to be, is almost always too weak to carry on a constant struggle with the inclinations. In this contest, it would very soon exhaust its forces. Doubtless the will manifests all its power only in effort and in contest ; but, happily, the contest is not always necessary ; and if there are toiling, heroic wills which triumph over the passions which they resist, there are also compliant, easy-going wills, which are but the 1 Mr. Sully justly remarks that the exercise of physical activity is itself a rudimentary educatiou of the will. WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 231 adhesion of a well-endowed soul to legitimate desires. In fact, most wills are of this sort ; and in the ordinary course of a well-regulated life, that which is willed is at the same time that which is felt and loved. The end of education ought, then, to be to associate and to unite desire and will, — to bring into accord pleasure and duty. Whatever can be done to give the inclinations wisdom, will also profit the will and will make its exercise easier. 240. Relation of the Will to the Intelligence. — The philosophers of the seventeenth century, especially Bossuet, included the will among the intellectual opera- tions. Every act of the will certainly implies an act of thought. The will might be defined a thought in action. There is no will, a philosopher has said, where there is no reason for willing. In proportion as we are more enlightened, and especially as we are more reflective ; as we conceive more clearly what we have to do, and the better under- stand why we ought to do it, the more are we our own masters, the more do we belong to ourselves ; in a word, the more will we have. Let us, then, train the child to reflect, not to form hasty resolutions, not to yield at the first blow to the calls of his desires, and to weigh the pros and the cons before adopting a determination ; and in this way we shall increase the strength of the will, whose power varies and is modified in proportion as our intellectual energy diminishes or augments. 241. The Will and Liberty. — In showing the con- trasts and the agreements, between the will on the one hand and the sensibilities and the inti>lligence on the other, we have defined the essential characteristics of the will, which are reflection and liberty. 232 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. There are no acts truly voluntary, save those which are delilierate, which suppose that a resolution has been taken after reflection, and the voluntary act is free, precisely because it issues, not from an inconsiderate and fatal instinct, but from a studied decision and from choice. Real liberty is nothing but the faculty of choosing with reflection and with a thorough knowledge of the matter, among several possible actions, tlie one which we prefer, the one which we think the best. Doubtless this liberty does not give us the power to break abruptly with our past, to loose ourselves from all solidarity with what we have already done, with our inclinations and our habits of mind ; it does not create acts absolutely inde- terminate, independent of all condition, — in a word, it does not perform miracles. But it does enfranchise us so far as this is possible ; it rescues us from the impulse of the moment, from the absolute empire of habit, from the yoke of passion, from the tyranny of fashion and of example ; it permits us to govern ourselves by our- selves and by our reason, and it is in this that we are free. 242. Culture of the Will. — The culture of the will is one of the most delicate problems of education. To develop and strengthen the will, it is first necessary to respect the spontaneity of the child, wliich is the germ of his indepemlence and li])erty. Parents who are too anxious to "break the wills of their children " are pre- paring weak and flabby characters that will be incapable of self-control. Says Kant : " We must not break the wills of children, but only direct them in such a way that they will know how to yield to natural obstacles." ^ 1 Kant, Pedagogie, p. 226. WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 233 The same thought inspired Rousseau, when, in the first twelve years of Emile's education, he subjected the conduct of the child to the sole rule of necessity. " Let the child eaiiy feel upon his proud head the hard yoke which nature imposes on man, — the heavy yoke of necessity, under which every finite being must bend ; let him see that this necessity lies in things, not in the caprice of men." ^ It is going too far, however, to suppress in early education the commands of parents and teachers. It is well, on the contrary, that the will of the child feel other wills in contact with his own ; but on one condition, — that these wills shall themselves be well adjusted, and that the orders through which they manifest themselves shall not be followed by counter-orders, — that they shall be clear and inflexible. The caprices of a wavering authority which contradicts itself, can have only disas- trous effects. Pulled in different directions, the will of the child will itself become capricious and mobile. The child should be neither a slave nor a despot. He should neither be constrained blindly to obey unreasonable orders, nor crossed in all his inclinations. On the other hand, he should not be gratified in all that he wishes. " Parents," says Kant, " often make a mistake in refusing their children everything they demand. It is absurd to refuse without reason what they naturally expect from the goodness of their par- ents. " On the other hand, children are spoiled by gratifying all their wishes. Doubtless they are prevented by this means from show- ing their bad humor, but they become all the more headstrong." 1 Emile, I., II. 234 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. We must at the same time know how to yield and to resist, and especially to resist. By always gratifying the caprices of the child, by flattering his instincts, we doubt- less emancipate his will, but we also make it disorderly, and in a sense weaken it. In fact, will supposes effort, domination over one's self. By resisting the child, we teach him to resist himself. It is onh' through the acquired habit of obeying others, that he will later become capable of obeying his own reason. 243. Practical Fepxing of Liberty. — There is a great practical interest in often pausing to reflect as follows, with reference to a proposed course of action : "Such a fault might have been avoided. Such a quality might have been acquired more quickly. Finally, some- thing different and better miglit have l)een done." This is a certain means of increasing our faith in the efficacy of our acts, of fortifying in our souls the most precious thing in this world, — I mean the actual feeling of our liberty, l)y ridding ourselves of that harassing notion of ne- cessity, of which Stuart Mill said, "The idea of necessity weighed upon my existence like an evil genius." Consequently, let us accustom the child to make frequent returns upon himself, to practice in a certain measure those examinations of conscience recommended by the philosophers of antiquity. The moral calendar of Franklin, who each day recorded the infractions which he had committed on the different precepts of duty, is an ingenious application of the same thought.^ 1 In other terms, we must do for the mind what Colonel Amoras did for the body : he gave each pupil what he called a physiological chart, in which were noted the condition of each organ at the begin- ning of the course in gymnastics and the progress made after each month of exercise. WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 235 244. Education in Liberty. — Man is really man only when be unites a firm and ever-ready will to vivid and elevated emotions, and to an enlightened intelligence. But this quality is rarer than we think. Doubtless if we con- sider only that inferior will which, while saying " I will," does nothing in reality but follow inclination or habit, — in this sense we use our will each moment of our life ; but if we must restrict the term will to a deliberate act, deter- mined on with reflection, who does not see that the human conscience rarely rises to this effort? The most often we act, I do not say without motive, which is impossible, but without reflective motive, and our actions are not really willed. There are men who are almost absolutely lacking in will, who in some sort do not belong to themselves, but who live a passive, mechanical life, the slaves of their own passions and the toys of exterior influences. Even those who reflect the most do not reflect as much as they might. There are within us treasures of energy which we do not know how to take advantage of, and we certainl}' have more reserve power than we have will. 245. No Act is Indifferent. — For real training in liberty, and for assuring to it all its power, it must be boi lu in mind that no one of our acts is indifferent. If we yifiri for a single time to an evil inclination, while promising our- selves to resist it to-morrow, we are guilty of a grave impru- dence ; for to-morrow we will not have the same power of resistance. Every act performed is a 1>eginning of habit, and habit fetters the will. For the very reason that we have even once acted in a certain way, we shall be a little more inclined to act again in the same way. Then let us keep watch over all the acts of the child. Let us not excuse him from any fault on the pretext that this will be the only instance of it, and that it will be time 236 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. to correct it when it occurs again. In every desire, however feeble, there is a will in germ, in every action there is the beginning of habit. 246. The Will and Habits. — The activity of the man and of the child manifests itself, as we know, under three forms : instinct, will, and habit. So far as possible, we must substitute will for instinct, — that is, reflective resolutions for blind impulses ; but must we oppose habits, as we oppose instincts ? No ; for it depends on us to make habit an easy way of doing without effort what we had previously done with reflection, with will ; habit consolidates the work of liberty. It has been said, not without truth, that " two obstacles, almost invincible, prevent us from being the masters of our wills, — inclination and habit." It would, however, be a grave and dangerous error to attribute to these two enemies of the will a power that cannot be over- come. Inclination can always be controlled, confronted with our interests and duty, and repressed by an ener- getic act of the will. As to habit, particularly at first, it is entirely dependent on the will, since it depends on us to prevent the repetition of the act which engenders habit. Even when it has become inveterate, we may succeed in conquering it, — if not at once and by a simple effort of the will, at least by a prolonged resistance and by skillful tactics. 247. Necessity of Habits. — To a great extent, educa- tion is but the art of forming good habits. So we do not comprehend what Rousseau has said with more wit than sense: "Emile must be allowed to learn no habit, save that of having none at all." Even Kant condemns habits, for the reason that " the WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 237 more habits a mau has, the less free and independent is he." The ideal of Kant and Rousseau would be a liberty al- wa3's active, which nothing would thwart ; a libert}' always alert, always in movement, which would determine itself anew in every circumstance of life. But habit is an "obe- dience," since it enchains us to the past.-' But the ideal of Rousseau and Kant cannot be realized. It is impossible to demand, at each moment of existence, that display of energy which is involved in each new exercise of liberty. Happily, human weakness may repose on good habits, which exempt it from efforts ceaselessly renewed, and which render the accomplishment of duty natural, easy, almost instinctive. The body cannot always be awake and erect ; it must sleep and recline ; and in the same way activity should not remain incessantly on the alert, — it must seek repose and must sleep, so to speak, in the easy and pleasant paths of habit. When the will has once purged the inclinations and regulated the habits, it can discharge itself in part upon the emotions and upon the routine government of the soul ; like a general who, iiav- ing pacified a country, sheathes his sword, but does not completely disarm, because unforeseen circumstances and changes in life may at any moment require new efforts of the will. Does some one object that habit diminishes effort, and consequently merit? We reply, with M. Marion, " Merit and effort are not the whole of morality. I am surer that a man will do right, when the right will cost him no trouble. "2 1 See Vinet, L'Ediication la Famille et la Societe. 2 M. Marion, in La Science de V Education, contained in the Reforme universitaire, April 1, 1885. 238 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. Then let us not demand of the will a continuous series of feats of strength. Moreover, the habits, however numerous they ma}' be, never suppress liberty, especially if we make of liberty itself, — that is, of reflective delib- eration, — a higher habit, which dominates all the others. 248. How THE Habits are Formed. — There is great need, then, that education should form good habits, — habits of mind, habits of feeling, habits of action. How shall it form them? How shall it succeed in ci'eating that second nature which will constitute the final char- acter of the man? In truth, the habits are formed of themselves by the repetition of the same act. Some are derived from the inclinations and instincts ; others from reflective acts in which the will has co-oporated. The part of the educator is, then, to keep watch, both over the instincts and the first manifestations of the will. On the start he will cut short evil tendencies, and nip in the bud vicious inclina- tions. Evil must be cut away to the very root. "Habit," says Montaigne, "begins in a mild and humble fash- ion ; it establishes in us little by little, and as it were by stealth, the foot of its authority ; but it soon reveals to us a furious and tyrannical face, and we shall hardly be able to rescue ourselves again from its hold." The teacher will prevent the rise of bad habits by opposing bad acts by all the means in his power, — by punishments if need be. To promote the formation of good habits, he will have only to encourage the child in acting, and with the aid of time the habit will be formed. It is hardly possil)le to impose, in a trice, new habits which will be in contradiction with the nature of the child. If the act which you command is repugnant WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 239 to him, that act, performed contrar}' to his will, will not leave I)ehiiid it a certain tendency to reproduce itself, which is the essential condition of the formation of habits. If, then, it is a question of habits that are somewhat dif- ficult, to which the child does not tend of himself, try to manage the transitions ; try to find the favorable moment when the action which we wish to transform into a habit will cost the child the least trouble. Let us be content, at first, if he performs the act with indifference ; he will next repeat it with pleasure, and the habit will be formed. In a word, let us insinuate habits, not impose them. " A new idea," said Fontenelle, " is like a wedge, — it must not be driven in by the blunt end." 249. How Bad Habits are to be Corrected. — But whatever may be the supervision of the teacher, it is not claimed that under the inttnence of external circumstances a bad habit will not make its appearance in the child. Moreover, when he enters school the child has already contracted certain dispositions, certain bents of mind and of heart. Is it possible to correct the vicious element Avhich custom has once introduced into the activity of the child? Certainly this is not an easy thing ; and we might al- most always despair of success, if we had no other means for attaining this end than to make a direct attack on the evil inclination which has become a habit, espe- cially if we wish to succeed in this all at once. Time has presided over the formation of habit, and time is also necessary to assure its disappearance. Let us be patient, therefore ; let us be satisfied if we succeed at first in de- laying the reappearance of the evil act. Little by little the empire of the will will be established, and the child will gradually rid himself of his propensity, especially if 240 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. we have had skill enough to establish different habits, which draw him in another du'ection. 250. The Will and Education, Public or Private. — At first sight one would be tempted to believe that pri- vate education is more favorable than public education, for the culture of the will. At school, of course, everything is regulated in advance ; everything is uniform ; there is no initiative ; there is a common level ; the child is never abandoned to himself ; the shortest periods of the day have their definite occupation. At home, on the con- trary, the child belongs more to himself ; he is not sub- jected to a rule so inflexible ; he has the disposition of his own time and occupation ; he has more initiative. And yet, looking at things more closely, we oome to be convinced that the school is worth more than the home for an apprenticeship in effort. Left with his par- ents, the child grows effeminate ; under their direction, often uncertain and variable, his acts lack continuity ; he wavers at random between their contradictory orders and his own caprices ; he does not learn to obey a fixed and immutable law. Real will is obedience freely given to the moral law ; and to train the child to this obedi- ence, obedience to an exact rule is the best of prepara- tions. "Obedience to law," says an unknown author quoted by Madame Necker de Saussure, " subjugates the will without enfeebling it, while obedience to men in- jures and enervates it." Madame Necker does not hesitate to acknowledge that " public education has the decided advantage, so far as the strengthening of character and the development of manly virtues and energy are concerned." " In the family the child escapes slackness with difficulty. In a quiet household there is no energy to display. All the weak are WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 241 protected; no one needs to defend himself or to defend others. This is a happy condition, doubtless, but power of soul is not ac- quired in this way. At college things do not go in this way. The young man learns to know his own rights, as well as those of others. He becomes accustomed to resist solicitations as he does threats, when he believes that equity is on his side. He learns the secret of good conduct, the art of putting himself on good terms with his equals, of knowing how far he may impose on them by his firmness, or of making himself loved by his condescension." ^ There are still other reasons that might be given. In the family the child does not easily have opinions of his own. He lives with persons who are his superiors in experience, whom he ought to respect, and whom for the most part he loves too much to annoy by differing with them in opinion. At school and college he lives with equals, and he has the right of free speech. In the family the instruction is generally too easy ; the lesson, so to speak, is all chewed; the child has not efforts enough to make to assimilate it. At college he needs to work more for himself, and to seek in personal reflection the means of comprehending a lesson uniformly given to all. 251. Self-education. — It is not, however, at school that the education of the will is completed. It is only in society, in contact with the difficulties of life, that the human personality is really formed. And this is doubt- less why Comenius reserved to the university, — that is, to the free life of the student, — the task of developing the will. Experience is the true school of the will. " At college we smooth the path for the steps of the child ; but difficulty is precisely the education of the will. We teach, but one really knows only what he discovers. We are guides — of whom? Of those who ought to guide themselves." 1 See Considerations sur V education publique et I'e'ducation prive'e. 242 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. This opposition which exists between the development of the personal will and school life, even the mildest and freest, disappears the day when the child is handed over to himself. It is especially then that his voluntary ac- tivity will find occasion for exercise and growth ; but it is then also that his will will incur the greatest dangers. We will have taught him in vain to will in the narrow circle of childish activity ; he will be likely to unlearn this in the vast field of manly activity. " With the will," as it has been justly remarked, " the work of education is never finished. Tiae child wlio has learned to read has not to go back to it ; it is finished. Witli the will it is never finished ; we are always going back to it." ^ 252. Difficulty of the Education of the Will. — With the aid of the will already formed, the success of intellectual education, as of moral education, is assured. But for the education of the will itself, where is the ful- crum, the lever upon which we shall press? Must there not already be a little will, in order that more of it may be acquired? What shall be done with the weak natures, which have no spring in them? Is it possible to give them will, if they have none? "It is the will which we have to right," says Gauthey, "and we would have it right itself. Let weakness produce strength, and evil engender the good."^ La Rochefoucauld said to the same effect, ' ' Weakness is the only defect which cannot be corrected." Happily, nature does not often propose to us this insoluble prol)lem. It is rare, if ever, that a child is absolutely deprived of the germs of will. If he has not enough will to oppose his defects, he will always have enough of it 1 Rousselot, Pe'dagogie, p. 2G3. 2 Gauthey, De I'Education, II., p. 266. WILL, LIBERTY, AND HABIT. 243 to acquire certain virtues ; for, according to the remark of Bourdaloue, "it costs less to enricli one's self with a thousand virtues, than to cure one's self of a single fault." 253. Good-will. — It would be of no account to train the will if there is not given it as a companion a love for what is good. la itself, in fact, the will may be an instrument of vice as well as an instrument of virtue. In their way, great criminals give proof of will-power. We may will the evil as earnestly as the good. It is, then, good-will that it is especially important to train and strengthen, — that good-will of which Kant said in a page which cannot be too often quoted : " Of all that it is possible to conceive in this world, and even beyond this world, there is but one thing that can be regarded as good without VGstriction, and this is a good-will. Intelligence, pen- etration, judgment, and all the qualities of mind ; courage, resolu- tion, and perseverance, or qualities of temperament, are doubtless good and desirable qualities in many respects ; but these gifts of nature may be extremely bad and pernicious, when the will which makes use of them and which constitutes essentially what is called chai'acter, is not itself good. " A good-will does not derive its goodness from its effects, from its results, nor from its aptitude to attain such or such a proposed end ; but simply from willing, — that is, from itself ; and, consid- ered in itself, it should be esteemed incomparably superior to everything that can be done by it to the advantage of a few inclinations, or even of all the inclinations combined. Were adverse fate or the avarice of a hard-hearted nature to deprive this good-will of all the means for executing its designs ; were its greatest efforts to end in nothing, and were it to remain nothing besides good-will, it would still shine with its own lus- tre like a precious stone, for it derives from itself all its own worth." 244 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. 254. Importance of the Will in Life. — Good- will, energy in well-doing, is the only thing which gives to life its value and its dignity. " If you imagine," says Mr. Blackie, " that you are to be much helped by books and reasons, speculations and learned disputa- tions, in this matter you are altogether mistaken. Books and discourses may indeed awaken and arouse you, and perhaps hold up the sign of a wise finger-post, to prevent you from going astray at the first start, but they cannot move you a single step on the road. It is your own legs only that can perform the journey; it is altogether a matter of doing You must have a compass of sure direction in your own soul." i In other terms, man must find in himself his own rule of conduct and the powers necessary to })ving him into conformity with it. The will is the essential agent of virtue. Moreover, it is not important merely for moral- ity of life ; it is necessary for happiness and success. Without it we would not succeed in the world, triumph over difficulties, and turn circumstances to our advantage. In affairs great or small, we have always need of the will. It is even an element in genius, which Buffon de- fined as " a long patience." The inventors and benefac- tors of humanity have accomplished their work only at the price of noble efforts and sturdy perseverance. Finally, at all steps of the social ladder, the will is the basis of the essential quality of man, — character. Character, in fact, is less the sum of our habits and tastes than the possession of a will that is strong, enlightened, just, and good, ^capable of coping with events; and a character thus constituted is the ideal of moral education. 1 Blackie, op. cit, p. 78. CHAPTEE XIL THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS; ESTHETIC EDUCATION; RELIGIOUS EDUCATION. 255. The Higher Sentiments. — Moral education would not be complete if it contemplated only the culture of the affectionate and benevolent emotions, the development of the conscience, and the progress of the will and the moral energy. It should also keep in view the culture of the higher emotions which depend equally on the intelli- gence and the sensibilities, and in which are mingled both the highest conceptions of the reason and the noblest emo- tions of the heart. These emotions are the love of the true, a taste for the beautiful, the love bf the good, of which we have already spoken, and the religious senti- ment. 256. The Love of the True. — Veracity. — Under its humblest form, the love of the true is the horror of falsehood ; under its highest form, it is the search for the truth, the scientific instinct. Educators have often studied the means of promoting in the child the tendency to veracity, which Mr. Bain in- cludes, with justice and benevolence, among the three fundamental virtues. The first and the best thing to do is to give the example of the most scrupulous veracity. Miss Edgeworth justly condemns the ingenious false- 245 246 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. hoods which Rousseau recommends to the teachers of children. " Sooner or later," she saj^s, "children discover that they are deceived, and then their distrust becomes in- curable. 'Honesty is the best policy,' must be the maxim in education as well as in all the other affairs of life."^ But example is not suthcient ; other precautions should be added. Rousseau has justly said that we should never tempt the veracity of the child, and question him on what he has an interest in concealing or misrepresenting. " It is ])etter," says Miss Edgeworth, "to suffer the loss of a broken glass than to put the child's sincerity to a test." If through misplaced severity we provoke a child to dis- semble his little faults, we may fear that, once having entered upon this course, he will persevere in it, and con- tract the habit of falsehood. On the other hand, when the child has freely acknowl- edged his remissness and blundering, let us show him that we are satisfied with his sincerity, rather than pro- voked by his faults. " The pleasure of being esteemed and of deserving .compliments," says Miss Edgeworth, " is delicious to children." If, on the contrary, the child is disposed to lie, show him, without scolding him too much, that the result of his dissimulation is the loss of our confidence. " A good means of correction," says M. Marion, " is to make it appear that we have less faith in the words of a child who has been caught in a falsehood, and to corroborate what he alleges by the testimony of his companions. He should be told, iu a tone of severity and sadness, that we feel under the painful necessity of not believing what he says, and on the contrary should impose implicit confidence in those of his companions who have never told a falsehood. 1 Practical Education, Chap. VIII. THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 247 "The habit of falsehood must be very inveterate, if it resist a treatment of this sort judiciously employed." ^ In other terms, education in veracity will employ as in- struments the other emotions of the child : fii'st, his vivid desire to be loved and esteemed by his parents and teach- ers, and to possess their confidence ; later, the feeling of personal dignity which lying abases. 257. The Search for Truth. — But this speaking the truth which we kuow is not all ; it is also necessary to search for truth which we do not know. Education has no more serious mission than to inculcate love of truth and to wage war on credulity and error. It will be assisted in this task by the child's natural curiosity, which, once excited, aspires to know everything and to comprehend everything. It is certainly not proposed to satisfy this curiosity in all respects, especially in the primary school ; but if the child cannot know all that is true, at least he should be taught nothing which is false. Education ought more and more to indoctrinate children with tiie scientific spirit, and should offer to their belief, not illusions which please them, but truths which instruct them. Then let us habituate the children to accept only opinions which lie within the compass of his thought, and which he can verify for himself. Without wishing to exer- cise his critical spirit prematurely, let us require him to express an opinion only in earnest and after reflection. Doubtless it is not proposed to make of him a little Car- tesian, who believes nothing which he cannot prove ; but so far as possible let us appeal to his reason. The pleasure which naturally accompanies the attainment of truth will gradually turn him aside from blind and irra- 1 M. Marion, Lemons de psychologic, p. 196. 248 TIIEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. tional opinions. He will come to love the truth for truth's sake ; will acquire a taste for knowledge ; will feel the need of personal research, and will taste the pleasure of discovery. 258. Love of the Beautiful. — "We need not stop here to give an exact and rigorous definition of the heauti- ful. We leave this task to the teachers of aesthetics. For our present purpose beauty is defined chielly by the feel- ings which it excites in the mind, by the charm tin-own about us by the productions of nature and the works of art, by the admiration with which they fill us. That the little child is sensible of the beautiful is a fact which cannot be disputed. Certain animals even seem to have some vague feeliug of beaut}'. M. Perez proves by numerous examples that even before the third year the musical instinct and the instinct of visual beauty are de- veloped and manifested. In his affection for animals, in his preferences for certain persons, and in his taste for pictures, the child already proves that he distinguishes confusedly between what is beautiful and wliat is ugly. A pretty toy, an agreeable face, a brilliant flower, attract him and please him. 259. -Esthetic Education. — A complete education can- not leave these natural dispositions uncultivated. It should develop them for their own sake, simply because they form a part of our nature, which would be mutilated if they were allowed to perish ; and it should develop and cultivate them for the furtlier reason tliat, if well-directed, they may have a happy influence upon moral education. A place must then be made for what might be called msthetic education. In its widest extent this education would comprise an appreciation of all the beauties of na- THE HIGHEK SENTIMENTS. 249 ture and art, literary taste, the enjoyment of music, a knowledge of the plastic arts, and also the various talents which permit us not only to feel the beauty there is in the works of others, but to realize it in works of our own. We are not concerned here with that special culture which makes critics, artists, and poets ; but, considered simply as an element in general education, in view of assuring the happiness and relative perfection of the human being, (esthetic education is still important ; and it is to be regretted that in modern society it has not yet obtained the credit which it enjoyed among the ancients. 260. Esthetic Education among the Ancients. — For making men moral, the ancients, particularly the Greeks, counted upon art even more than religion. At Athens, moral education was above all an sesthetic education. Plato thought that the soul ascends to the good through the beautiful. "Beautiful and good " are two words con- stantly associated by the Greeks. " We ought," says Plato, " to seek artists who by the power of genius can trace out the nature of the fair and the graceful, that oiu- young men, dwelling as it were in a healthful region, may drink in good from every quarter, whence any emanation from noble works may strike upon their eye or ear, like a gale wafting health from salubrious lands, and win them imperceptibly from their earliest years into resemblance, love, and harmonv with the true beauty of reason. " Is it not, then, on these accounts that we attach sucli supreme importance to a musical education, because rhythm and harmony sink most deeply into the recesses of the soul, bringing graceful- ness in their train, and making a man graceful if he be rightly nurtured, — but if not, the reverse, — and also because he that has been duly mu'tured therein will have the keenest eye for defects, whether in the failures of art or in the misgrowths of nature, an<1, feeling a most just disdain for them, will commend beautiful 250 TIlEORETICxVL PEDAGOGY. objects, gladly receive them into his soul, feerl upon them, and grow to be noble and good; whereas he will rightly censure and hate all repulsive objects, even in his childhood, before he is able to be reasoned with ; and when reason comes, he will welcome her most cordially who can recognize her by instinct of relationship and because he has been thus nurtured V " ^ What Plato designates music would be called to-day art m general ; and in bis view art is, so to speak, a ladder of virtue, a preparation for the life of the reason. The ancients were always inclined not to isolate moral- ity, but to confound it, now witli the searcli for the true, and now with the love of the good. While Socrates af- firmed that the good and the true are the same thing, the Stoics proclaimed the identity of beauty and virtue. 261. The Arts and Morals. — In fact, there are inti- mate relations between the arts and morals. "Art should be taught a child," says M. iMarion, "because it has an incomparable educating power. The heuutifid is essentially order and harmon)/. From the imagination and the mind, that order and harmony pass into the heart and soon manifest them- selves outwardly by elegance and grace; a just proportion is ob- served in the movements, and finally it reappears in the acts. Good taste easily takes the form of self-respect. Is it not a com- monplace to say that art softens public and private manners ? There are faults and moral tendencies, the idea of which a mind accustomed to live in companionship with the beautiful can neither conceive nor abide." ^ Evil, in fact, is an ugly thing ; and the delicacy of a soul sensitive to beauty is offended at it and spurns it. And if we make a minute study of the different beauties 1 Republic, pp. 401, 402. 2 M. Marion, Lemons de psychologie, p. 200. THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 251 which art and nature have contrived for charming and ennobling life, the moral influence of the beautiful appears still more striking. The spectacles of nature allay the passions and envelop us in their purity and innocence. The plastic arts at the very least reveal and communicate to us the grace and elegance of the bodily movements. Music, the most impressive of the arts, to which the ancients attributed a preponderant part in moral education, trans- mits to the soul a certain contagion of order and har- mony. Finally, poetry exalts and enchants us by its more formal inspirations ; it moves us Avith admiration for all the beautiful deeds which it celebrates, and which it proposes as models to the enthusiasm that it excites within us. 262. The Arts as a Source of Pleasure. — The arts are not merely an element of moral culture, but deserve to be recommended also as the source of some of the sweetest, keenest, and also the most elevated emotions which human nature can enjoy. It is not possible to cut off man from pleasure ; so let us try to have him seek it and find it in the pure enjoyments of art. " We should recognize in the art emotions," says Mr. Bain, " a means of pleasure as such, a pure hedonic factor; in which capacity they are a final end. Tlieir function in intellectual education is the function of all pleasure when not too great; namely, to cheer, refresh, and encourage us in our work." ^ The artistic pleasures, in fact, have no disturbing or corrupting effect ; they calm and pacify the soul. Far from turning it aside from serious studies, they incline it towards them ; they compromise neither the delicacy of the emotions nor the strength of the reason. They oc- 1 Education as a Science, pp. 96, 97. 252 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. cupy, better than any otlier diversion can, our hours of leisure, the intervals of active life ; and when we leave them, we resume without effort and without disturbance the labors and obligations of our profession or trade. To those who might be tempted to deny the moral influence of art, and who might not comprehend what power it has to purify and ennoble the soul, we would reply further that the aesthetic sentiments are good in themselves ; that they bring us exquisite, salutary, and wholesome joys ; and that they are also good because they replace other emotions, and are substitutes for inferior pleasures of a purely material order, where morals are destroyed and the heart abased. "If we regard education as a means of making men happy," says Mr. Bain, "it ought cer- tainly to comprise a knowledge of the arts." 263. Testimony of Stuart Mill. — In general, the most scientific minds, those most enamored of the truth, do not remain insensible to the charm of the arts. Thus, in his Memoirs, Stuart Mill relates that his early educa- tion, under the direction of an austere father, had been entirely devoted to abstract reflection, to logic, and to science. At three years of age he knew Greek ; at twelve, he was a logician ; at thirteen, he learned the in- tegral calculus. What resulted from this exclusively' intel- lectual education, from this inordinate instruction? During his years of adolescence he was seized with a profound sadness, a real disgust for life. At the age of twenty he was beset each day for a winter by a wish to drown himself. But a book of poems fell into his hands ; he formed a taste for music ; and he was saved, consoled by emotion. He then comprehended the importance of the first emotions and sentiments which attach us to life, by embellishing it with their charms. THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 253 264. The Arts in the Common School. — As yet the arts have had too little influence upon popular education. The child has so little time to devote to his instruction ; he must in five or six years learn so many things for im- mediate use, must acquire so much practical knowledge, that we hesitate to impose on him this new burden which comes from even an elementary study of the arts. And yet it is very desirable that popular education should not be exclusively subordinate to the pursuit of material interests, and that there should be reserved a place, the widest possible, for the disinterested culture of taste and the sentiment of the beautiful. " Would not the laboring man," says M. Ravaisson eloquently, " upon whom hard necessity imposes so heavy a weight, find the best alleviation for his hard condition, if his eyes were opened to what Leonardo da Vinci calls la bellezza del mondo ; if he also were thus called to enjoy the sight of those graces which we see scattered over this vast world, and which, made sensible to the heart, according to Pascal's expression, soothe more than anything else his sadness, and more than anything else give him the pre- sentiment and the foretaste of a better destiny?" 265. Love for the Beautiful, how Cultivated. — From the child's earliest years he should be accustomed to inhale, so to speak, the beauties which surround him. Even in the country, where works of art are lacking, the pretty, beautiful, or sublime things presented 1)}' the spec- tacle of nature will suffice for this primary education in aesthetics. Later, the field-laborer will feel sustained in his rude toil by the love with which he has been inspu'ed for rural beauty. " Very early the child should be made sensible to the beauties of trees, flowers, bu'ds, insects, and all those marvels which he might perhaps pass by without seeing; he must be led to 254 THEOKETICAL PEDAGOGY. the pure source of the disinterested enjoyments of admira- tion." 1 " For the language of the imagination," said Madame Necker de Saussure to the same effect, " the first vocabulary is to be found in nature." Says Herder also, " It is a proof of the profound barbarism in which we bring up our children, that we neglect to give them, from their earliest years, a profound impression of the beauty, harmony, and variety which our earth presents." ^ 266. Indirect Means. — At school even the decoration of the class-room, the simple ornaments with which it is embellished, the pictures which adorn its walls, and the illustrations in the text-books, will be so many indirect means for preparing the child to enjoy whatever is beauti- ful. It is not possible to expect that the child in our school shall live, like the little Athenian, among the masterpieces of art, and, so to speak, in the midst of a world of statues. At least, so far as pcjssible, he should be surrounded by objects which do not shock his taste ; and even in his toys everything that is ugly or repulsive, everything that is of a nature to produce bad habits of hearing and seeing, should be avoided.^ The treasures of art should also be opened to him by visits to museums and libraries. 1 Mile. Clialauiet, I'Ecole maternelle, p. 150. 2 Herder, Idees, IL, Chap. IV. 3 An elegant and judicious writer, M. Rigault, strongly insists on the disadvantages presented by the first playthings if they chance to be ugly. " Why is it that almost always there is made of the rattle, of that old man in metal which is the first plaything of the child, a deformed creature, hump-backed, with inordinate mouth and a hooked nose reaching to the chin ? The first imitation of nature which strikes the eyes of the child is the figure of a monster. He is Intro- THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 255 267. Special Exercises. — But to these indirect means there must be added special exercises. These studies, however, should remain very elementary. " The school," says M. Rendu, " ought to make neither mechan- ists, agriculturists, surveyors, nor gymnasts ; and no more sliould it make musicians. Tlie school initiates the child into the sciences he will need when he becomes a man ; it makes a rough draft, but does not complete the picture." ^ M. Ravaisson, in the remarkable article to which we have already referred, gives his preference to drawing, and to the drawing of the human figure. But perhaps for the pupils of the common school, for the workmen of the future, ornamental and geometrical drawing may l>e more useful, and may prepare them better for the vocations which will occupy their lives. 268. Culture of the Taste. — An elementary educa- tion in {esthetics ought to develop the taste, rather than talent for execution ; not that refined and purely critical taste, which simply spies out defects in works of art, and which is of advantage only to specialists ; but that cath- olic and beneficent taste which borders on entlmsiasra, which is interested in all forms of beauty, which is dis- played not merely in the appreciation of literary qualities, but in the enjoyment of all the arts. duced to art through the medium of the ugly. But this is not all; the body of this knock-kneed, hump-backed fellow is provided with a shrill whistle, the sound of which tortures the nascent hearing of the child. This is intended, it is said, to divert him. Here is the first idea given to him of music, — his entrance on life is greeted by a false note. I am persviaded that each year in our country the education of the child by this wretched toy destroys in germ a host of painters and musicians." {CEuvres completes, IV. p. 276.) 1 Manuel de renseignement primaire. 256 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. " Only a few are artists," says Mr. Bain, " and the rest enjoy the works produced by these Without being able to perfoi-m, one may acquire a taste for music by listening to performances. .... The group of arts addressed to the eye, — painting, design, sculpture, architecture, — are the enjoyment of many ; but their production is confined to a few. . . . Every literary teacher con- tributes to the poetic taste, both as enjoyment and as discrimina- tion." 1 Without doubt it is literary and poetic taste that it is easiest to develop, because, first, the masterpieces in this line are more numerous than in any other, and then for the reason that models of literary art are within the reach of all, and it is not necessary, in order to enjoy them, to force the doors of a museum. 269. Art as a Moralizer. — We cannot repeat too often that aesthetic culture concerns us less as a disinter- ested education of the artistic faculties than as an ally in moral education. It is this function of art which a con- temporary moralist has placed in sharp relief in the fol- lowing extract : " We know the system of those fathers, mothers, and teachers who imagine that in education scoldings alone are efficacious, and that we form and mould the soul only by the use of maxims. In this sort of instruction, or ratlier regime, if the maxims are of a nature not to be easily swallowed, it is thought best to resort to a wholesome deception ; the remedy is diluted in a fable, so that the patient may take it without suspecting what it is, in imitation of that physician of antiquity, who, not able to make his patient take a bitter herb, bethought himself to have a goat fed on it, so that the milk, thus impregnated with the medicinal virtue, might restore the deceived invalid to health. In this way a thousand sly and insidious ways are taken to infuse the precepts 1 Education as a Science^ Chap. XIII. THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 257 of morality. Is not this to say in effect that honesty is a frightful and disagreeable thing, which must be persistently sweetened and adulterated in order to make it palatable? Even supposing this education to be good, is it the only one? Is it not likely that children will be more profited by living with an honorable man who lives nobly, who expresses only noble sentiments, who by his discoui'se and his example spreads around him a beneficent in- fluence, without ever resorting to the language of the moralities? It may be said that in society art resembles a noble man. If it is what it ought to be, if it is grand and pure and delicate, it instructs and purifies by its very delicacy, it teaches by its very presence." ^ 270. Excesses to be Avoided. — But whatever may be said of the educative virtue of art, we must neverthe- less be on our guard against exaggeration, and oppose those who say that beauty is the secret of education, just as beauty is the secret of the universe. No ; unfortu- nately, the real education of man cannot be content with the gracious and vague inspirations of art ; the child can- not thrive on hymns and sonnets, in hymnis et canticis; we might just as well say that he ought to be brought up in games and a perpetual recreation. Esthetic pleas- ures may indeed be pure and elevated pleasures, but after all they are but pleasures ; they share the nature of emotions, and the emotions cannot be the rule of life. The abuse of the aesthetic emotions enervates and en- feebles the soul, and makes minds so extremely delicate as to be unable to confront with courage the unpleasant things of real life. "The delicate are unhappy," said La Fontaine ; and he meant by this that the delicate have not force enough to resist the trials of life, to surmount its difficulties and obstacles. Let us plant in the heart a 1 M. Martha, in the Beoue des Deux Mondes, April 15, 1870. 258 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. noble aspiration after the ideal ; but let us not forget that life is made up of realities, that existence does not at all resemble a pleasing poem, interspersed with songs, in which we have but to follow the seducing lead of the pleasures of taste. There are efforts to make, struggles to sustain, miseries to figlit ; and to prepare man for the combats of life there must be a virile apprenticeship ; we must develop the reason still more than the imagination, and must cultivate science more than art and poetry. 271. The Religious Sentiment. — Whatever may be the importance of the religious sentiment in life, we shall make but brief mention of it here, since this sentiment is especially connected with doctrines and confessional be- liefs, with which the philosophy of education cannot concern itself. While in England and* elsewhere, " the schoolmaster of the primary school is expected to be an instructor in re- ligion, both in its own proper character and as a support of the highest morality," we have in France preferred to separate the school from tlie church, and to leave to the ministers of the different sects the duty of catechizing chihlren. Is this saying that everything relating to religious edu- cation ought to be discarded from instruction proper? Certainly not. Apart from forms and rites and particu- lar dogmas, tliere is a natural aspiration of man towards religion, — that is, according to the definition which M. Marion gives of it, "towards a body of ])eliefs wliich surpass positive Ivuowledge, and which relate to man's place in nature, as well as to his destiny." ^ In our opinion the part of the educator will be mainly 1 La Reform universitaire, 10« le^on. THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 259 negative in such cases ; I mean that he ought scrupulously to respect all the l^eliefs of the child, and to sa}' noth- ing and do nothing which may wound the religious feelings which have been inculcated in him by his parents or his ecclesiastical teachers. But must anything beyond this be done? Must the instructor depart from this atti- tude of deference and respect, to intervene directly and actively in the culture of the religious sentiment? Many great and good men do not hesitate to reply in the affirmative. 272. Religious Education in the Common Schools. — M. Paul Janet has clearly defined the proper sphere of relig- ious education in moral instruction. He speaks as follows : " The natural coronation of moral instruction in the common school will be the knowledge of God. Children will be taught that life has a serious purpose, that men are not the product of chance, that a wise thought watches over the universe, and that a vigilant eye penetrates all hearts. It will pertain to the j^articular sects to teach and prescribe regular exercises in traditional form. Special effort will be made to awaken in souls the religious sentiment ; they will be made to comprehend that the feeling and thought of God may be asso- ciated with all the acts of life, and that every action may be at the same time moral and religious, so far as it is the accomplish- ment of the will of Providence. Qui. travaUle prie, says the proverb. A life which strives to preserve itself pure and virtuous is a con- tinual prayer. As to stated prayer in a particular form, it is within the domain of positive relip;ion. It seems to us that this way of interpreting one's duties towards God can offend no one, for the state does not undertake to assert that a purely subjective piety is sufficient, and it leaves the different sects to show that it is not. Those who think in this way will feel only the more authorized to require parents to complete the religious education of their children by the instruction of the church." ^ 1 Bapport, a la section permanent du Conseil Supe'rieur, 20 juin, 1882. 260 THEORETICAL PEDAGOGY. 273. Morals and Religion. — In speaking thus, M. Janet is inspired by some of the greatest masters of modern pedagogy, especially by Rousseau and Kant. For Kant, morals and religion are inseparable ; and between them are intimate relations. But the German philosopher understands these relations as follows : "In his view, morals is the base and source of religion ; it is re- ligion which is the consequence of morals. It is because one first believes in duty imperiously revealed by con- science, that he afterwards rises to the conception of God and to the hope of an immortal destiny." ^ "Religion," he says, "is the law which resides within us, so far as it derives its authority from a supreme legislator and judge; it is morals applied to the knowledge of God. When religion is not united to morality, it is no moi'e than a manner of soliciting the favor of heaven. Songs, prayer, attendance at church, ought to serve only to give man new strength and new courage to work for his amelioration ; they should be but the expression of a heart animated by the idea of duty. They are but preparations for good works, but not themselves good works, and one cannot please God except by becoming better. . . . The beginning must not be made in theology. Religion which is founded solely on theology has no moral element. It will embody no feelings save the fear of punishment on the one hand and on the other the hope of reward, that which will produce only a superstitious creed. Morality must then precede and theology follow; and this is what is called religion." In other terms, God ought to appear in the conscious- ness only behind duty. From the idea of law we rise to the idea of the lawgiver. The reproaches of the con- science are as the ambassadors of God in our soul. However difficult the course we have just indicated may be for the intelligence of the child, we are convinced that 1 Kant, Pedagogic, p. 243. THE HIGHER SENTIMENTS. 261 it is the only one which is admissible in lay teaching, in universal instruction. Let us not introduce the child into religious controversies ; let us be temperate on all those questions which divide men, and in which absolute clear- ness has not been attained. Religion is nothing if it is but a series of formulas learned by heart and imposed by force. Let us respect the liberty of the child, let us in no re- spect restrain his soaring towards the ideal, towards the infinite ; but let us not constrain him by obliging him to believe what he does not comprehend. Let us aim chiefly at morals ; let us build moral principles on such solid foundations that in a crisis which might carry away re- ligious beliefs, the belief in duty would not disappear with them. PART SECOND. PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. CHAPTEE I. METHODS IN GENERAL. 274. Practical Pedagogy. — Practical pedagogy is but the application of the general rules established in theo- retical pedagogy. After having studied the different facul- ties by themselves, both in their natural development and in their school training, it is proposed to examine by the light of these established principles the different parts of the course of study and the principal questions of discipline. In other terms, from the subject of education, the child, we now pass to the object of education ; that is, to the methods of teaching and to the rules of school adminis- tration. 275. Method in General. — Method in general is the order which we voluntarily introduce into our thoughts, our acts, and our undertakings.-^ To act methodically is the contrary of acting thoughtlessly, inconsiderately, without continuity and without plan. Port Royal justly defined method as ' ' the art of rightly arranging a series of several thoughts." Understood in this liberal sense, method is applicable to 1 M. Rousselot defines method as the straightest and surest route for the discovery of truth, or for the communication of it when it has been discovered. This definition is not satisfactory, because it omits the element which is absolutely essential to the meaning of the word. Method implies calculation, reflection, will. 265 266 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. all the parts of education as to aU the undertakings of man. The first duty of a teacher is, not to proceed at random, not to count upon the inspiration of the moment and upon the good fortune of improvised effort, but always to be guided by principles deliberately chosen, ac- cording to fixed rules and in a premeditated order. The lack of method is the ruin of education. There is noth- ing to be expected from a discipline which is hesitating and groping ; from instruction which remains incoherent and disorderly, which fluctuates at the mercy of circum- stances and occasions, and which, being wholly unpre- meditated, allows itself to be taken at unawares. 276. Methods op Instruction. — In a more precise and particular sense, method designates a whole body of rational processes, of rules, of means which are practiced and followed in the accomplisliment of any undertaking. Just as for the discovery of truth there are methods which logic prescribes, there will also be, for the communi- cation and teaching of truth, other methods, the study of which constitutes practical pedagogy. Methods will vary with the nature of the subjects to be taught. Geography will be taught differently from gram- mar, and mathematics differently from physics. They will also vary with the age of the child. It is not possi- ble to present history to the pupils of a primary school in the same form as to the pupils of a high school. Con- sequently methods will vary with the different grades of instruction. They will be one thing in a primary school and another in a normal school ; one thing in general prinify-y instruction, and another thing in secondary in- struction. In other terms, methods of instruction should always conform to these three general principles : 1 , the special METHODS IN GENEEAL. 267 characteristics of the branches of knowledge communi- cated to the child ; 2, the laws of mental evolution at different periods of life ; 3, the particular purpose and the scope of each grade of instruction. 277. Methodology, so called. — The study of meth- ods of instruction constitutes one of the most important divisions of educational science. To give it a name, foreign educators have borrowed from philosoph}' the stately term methodology. Others have called it didactics, or the art of teaching. M. Daguet ventures the desig- nation metJiodics.^ Special works have been devoted to methodology, which itself is subdivided, and comprises several parts. In Belgium and in Switzerland the professors of pedagogy distinguish general methodology, which treats of the principles common to all method, from special methodol- ogy, which examiues in succession the different branches of instruction, and searches for the best means to be em- ployed in each science and in each study. It is a distinc- tion analogous to that which is found in treatises on Logic, where we study general method, applicable to all the sciences, before devoting special chapters to the method peculiar to each science. 278. Utility of Methods. — Educators are very far from having come to an understanding as to the utility of methods and the necessity of studying them. Some are disposed to accord everything to methods, and others nothing or almost nothing. IMethods, according to Talleyrand, are the masters' masters. "The true instruments of the sciences, they 1 M. Daguet, Manuel de Pedagogic, Neuchatel, 1881, p. 126. 268 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. are to teachers themselves what teachers are to their pupils." ^ Pestalozzi, who however lacked method, and assures us that "he proceeded in his instruction without knowing what he did, guided only by very obscure but very vivid feeling," — Pestalozzi put a very^ high estimate on those systematic rules which he had not sufficient reflective power to impose upon himself. At certain moments he pushes to fanaticism, even to superstition, his enthusi- asm for methods, precisely because he was most lacking in them. He disowned himself, his own qualities of inspiration and feeling, and his ever-active and ever- vivifying personality when he pronounced these strange words : " I believe that we must not think of making, in general, the least progress in the instruction of the people, as long as we have not found modes of teaching whicli make of the instructor, at least so far as the elementary studies are concerned, the simple mechanical instrument of a method which owes its results to the nature of its processes, and not to the skill of him who employs it, I affirm that a school-book has no value, except so far as it can be employed by a teacher without instruction, as well as by one who is instructed." ^ It is not proposed to make of the instructor an autom- aton, and of method a mechanism which is a substitute for the intelligence and the personal qualities of the teacher. If we recommend the study of methods, it is 1 " The purpose of methods is to conduct teachers in the true paths, to simpUfy and abridge for them the difficult road of instruc- tion. They are not necessary alone to common minds ; the most creative genius itself receives incalculable aid from them." {Rapport a VAssemUe'e constituante.) 2 How Gertrude teaches her Children. METHODS IN GENERAL. 269 for the especial purpose of driving from instruction routine and questionable tradition, and not of introducing into it, under another form, a sort of learned mechanism. Methods are instruments ; but instruments, however per- fect they may be, owe their whole value to the skill of the hand that employs them. To the paradox of Pesta- lozzi we oppose the wisdom of the ages, and the proverb which says, "As is the master so is the method." Let us also bear in mind that methods are not unchangeable regulations, despotic and irrevocable laws ; it rests with the initiative of the teacher to modify them according to the results of his own experience and the suggestions of his own mind. " Methods," as Madame Necker de Saussure says, "ought to be in a state of peipetual improvement." Thus understood, not as laws slavishly accepted with a superstitious respect, but as instruments which are to be handled with freedom, methods, no one will deny, may render important services. " Method," says M. Marion, " is a necessary condition of success, and, with respect to efficiency of service, it puts, as it were, an abyss between men of equal good intent. Descartes went so far as to say that, apparently eqixal as to intellectual endowments, men dLffer not so much by the power they have in searching for truth, as iu the method which they employ. The truth is that in every kind of practical work, other things being equal, he who proceeds rationally has at least three great advantages over him who lives on expedients, from hand to mouth. Starting with a fixed purpose, he runs less risk of losing sight of it and of missing his way. Having reflected on the means at his command, he has more chances of omitting none of them and of always choosing the best. Finally, sure both of the end in view and of the means of attaining it, it depends only on himself to reach it as soon as possible. ' A lame man on a straight road,' said Bacon, ' reaches his destination sooner than a courier who misses his way.' " * 1 M. Marion, article Me'thode, in the Bictionnaire de P^dagogie. 270 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 279. Abuse of the Study of Methods. — But, con- vinced as we are of the utility of methods, we do not think that it is necessary to pause to study the abstract generalities which dominate them. If this point is not guarded, the educators of our day will proceed to con- struct a sort of new scholastic, all bristling with learned formulas, subtile divisions, and pedantic terms. They will succeed in making of a very simple study, one wholly practical, a logic of a new kind and of a truly frightful aspect, in which fine words succeed fine words, and in which the real things are forgotten. Let us distrust the formalism which is always ready to set up its claims, because it is easier to inscribe words on paper than to awaken emotions in the heart or to enrich the mind with positive notions. Open one of those manuals of pedagogy which are so very popular in Belgium and Germany. You will there find interminable pages devoted to the distinction between principles, modes, forms, processes, and methods of instruc- tion.^ You will there see crowded tables which contain no less tlian eight forms of instruction : the acromatic form, or that of uninterrupted exposition, the erotematic, or that of interrupted exposition, which contains no less than seven other distinct forms, as the catechetic, socratic, heuristic, rep)etitive, examinative, ancdytic and synthetic, and the ^>araZof/ic. As if this were not enough, there fol- lows a subdivision of processes, as the intuitive, coni- paratioe, by opposition, etymological, by reasoning, descrip- tive, by internal observation, repetitive, synoptic, by re2')ro- duction, and eleven processes besides ! 1 To note but one, see the Cours de pedagogic et de me'tkodologl, by M. H. Braun, inspector of the normal schools of Belgium, Brusso!?, 1885, p. 954. METHODS IN GENERAL. 271 What good can come from this tedious analysis, from this complicated enumeration, from this purely verbal science, in which hundreds of words are employed, and yet teach nothing of the things themselves? Teaching would become a very laborious art, were it necessary, in order to be a good instructor, to have lodged in the mem- ory all these definitions of pure form, all these insipid abstractions. It is said that modern education tends to approach nature. Alas ! we are far from nature with these distillers of pedagogic quintessence, who split hairs, who distinguish and analyze the simplest things, and in- vent several barbarous terms to designate identical opera- tions. For a long time it was thought that it was im- possible to reason well without knowing the categories and the rules of the syllogism. Let us not imagine, by a similar illusion, that in order to teach well one's memory must be stuffed with this pedagogic nonsense, with these nomenclatures as vain as pretentious. It is not only their inutility that alarms us. We also fear that they may divert the mind from more serious interests, and that this unsubstantial food may destroy the taste for more solid and substantial aliment. We fear that that which gives instruction its real power, — life, inner emo- tion, free and original inspiration, — may succumb under this maze of abstractions which fetter the mind and make it bend under the weight of these dangerous puerilities. Hence let us shun all those sterile discussions which con- sist in knowing, for example, which are the general prin- ciples, the special principles, the positive principles, the negative principles of teaching;^ or, still further, "whether analysis is a method or a form." ^ Let us be satisfied with a few definite notions, and as summary as possible. 1 M. Braun, op. cit, p. 200. 2 Ibid., p. 235. 272 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 280. Methods, Modes, and Processes of Instruc- tion. — Witliout wishing to multiply distinctions, it is nev- ertheless impossible to confound with metiiods, properly so-called, what it has been agreed to call modes of teaching. Modes of teaching depend neither on the order which is followed nor upon the means which are employed for instructing children ; they have reference simply to the different groups of pupils and to different ways in which the instruction is distributed. There is the individual mode, as when the teacher ad- dresses himself to a single pupil ; or the simultaneous mode, as when he addresses himself to several pupils, as to a whole class ; or the mutual mode, when the teacher stands aside and requires the children to instruct one another. The individual mode is really appropriate only in private education, where a preceptor is face to face with a single pupil. At school there is no propriety in proceed- ing in this way, and it is difiicult to imagine a class where the teacher repeats forty times to forty pupils what it suffices to say once to all. It was this system, however, or something very like it, that was formerly employed in the early history of the school. In the seventeenth century, for example, the Ecole paroissiale, a school manual of the times, says in literal terms: "Those who go to the master to read shall present themselves but two at once The teacher shall call the writers to his desk, two by two, to correct their exercises."* All that remains, all that can remain of individual in- struction, in a class regularly organized, is the interroga- 1 L' Ecole paroissiale, 1654, 3« partie, Chap. IV METHODS IN GENERAL. 273 tion which the teacher addresses to a single pupil. Such interrogations should be made with a loud voice, in order that all the pupils may participate in the exercise. As to the mutual mode, it was but an expedient sug- gested by necessity at the time when teachers were scarce and resources were limited, and it was necessary at slight expense to instruct well or ill a very large number of pupils.^ Almost universally abandoned to-day, and virtu- ally condemned, the mutual system never had a claim in theory to be regarded as a rational mode of school organization. There remains the simultaneous nlode,^ which is the only one possible in classes more or less numerous, if it is desired that without loss of time the sound instruction of an experienced teacher, not that of a monitor witliout authority, should be directly transmitted to all the pupils. It is true that the simultaneous mode, though it is the general rule and the prevailing form of instruction, ought not to proscribe absolutely the incidental and exceptional use of other systems. So far as possible, the teacher ought, while addressing himself to all, to speak to each ; he ought to take account of the vivacity of some and the slowness of others ; he should vary his language, so as to accommodate himself to the different aptitudes of his pupils ; finally, he should not forget that, though his instruction is simultaneous, his attention and his efforts ought to remain individual. On the other hand, in very large schools and in those where a single teacher has three divisions to manage, the 1 Swiss teachers distinguish a mode of instruction as the magistral, " that which is entirely given by the master, without co-operation on the part of pupils." 2 See Compayrc's Ilistory of Pedagogy, pp. 513, 519; also Gill's Systems of Education, Chap. IV. 274 PK ACTIO AL PEDAGOGY. master sometimes needs to appeal to the good-will of his best pupils, and thus to employ something like mutual instruction. This is what is called the mixed mode.^ 281. Methods and Processes. — There might also be retained, although it is of less importance, the classical distinction between methods and processes, methods being the sum of the principles which preside over instruc- tion, assign to it its end, regulate its order, and deter- mine its course ; while processes signify the particular means which are employed in the application of methods. Thus to demonstrate geometrical truths is a method ; to exhibit them on a board, and then cause them to be re- peated by the pupils, is a process. To give a didactic exposition of liistorical facts is a method ; to require re- statements from pupils is a process. 282. General Method. — The further pedagogy enters into the detail of methods and into the minute examina- tion of processes, the nearer it will approach its end, which is not to construct beautiful theories, but to render practical services. However, before entering upon the different varieties of studies, before searching for the rules which are especially adapted to each of them, it is not without use to throw a glance over the general methods of instruction and the rules applicable to all the parts of the programme. Besides being interesting in itself to reduce apparent diversities to unity, and to loolv for essen- tial principles in the multitude of particular applications, educators have so extended the list of methods, they 1 By addressing himself to eacli of his pupils individually, the master learns to know his pupils better, to treat them according to their particular characters, and can bettei- follow the development of their minds. (Wilm, Essai sur I'e'ducation da peuple.) METHODS IN GENEEAL. 275 offer us so great a luxuriance and so stately a display of pedagogical instruments, that it is necessary to sim- plify their classifications nnd to try to introduce some clearness into a subject which it seems so easy to make obscure. 283. Classification of Methods. — It is no longer two or three methods which the classical treatises on pedagogy distinguish ; but if we are to trust these autliori- ties, there are more than a dozen different methods. In the presence of this endless catalogue we may well imag- ine that the teacher experiences a sort of dismay. Are there, in fact, so many ways of correct procedure? Does good instruction admit of so many refinements and com- plications ? No ; and it needs only a little attention to be convinced that these classifications and tabular state- ments can be easily reduced without any detriment to facts, and simply by pruning away a vain display of words. "We shall then place no reliance on the synoptical table of M. Daguet, who distinguishes methods as the educative, the rational, the practical, the progressive, the synthetic, the analytic, the intensive, the inventive, and the intuitive, to wliich must be added, according to other authorities, the experimental, the socratic, tlie inductive, the deductive, the demonstrative, and the expositive, without counting the com- posite methods which result from the coupling of two simple methods, such as the analytic-synthetic, the demonstrative- expositive, the denionstrative-interrogative, etc., etc. -^ We shall attempt to show that at bottom, behind this verbiage, there are concealed at most two or three real distinctions ; that methods might be reduced to two, if we regard merely 1 We may still clistiiiguisli as methods the systems followed by different educators, as the methods of Jacotot, Pestalozzi, Froebel, etc. 276 ' PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. the order which is followed in the distribution and in the connection of the truths or facts taught ; and that at most there are four, if we take into account, not merely the in- terior nexus which connects the different propositions of which a given study is composed, but also the form which the teacher gives to his instruction. 284. Interior Order of Truths which are to be Expounded ; Induction and Deduction. — Let us begin by considering the first element, the first factor of method, — the logical order which presides over the sequence of propo- sitions. From this point of view, the teacher who communicates truth, like the scholar who discovers it, has at his com- mand onW two methods, induction and deduction. He either takes facts for his point of departure, and having made his pupils observe and test them, he classifies them according to their resemblances, and leads tlie pupil to the law which includes them ; and this is the pedagogical application of the inductive method. Or he starts with general truths and definitions which he explains and causes to be comprehended, and by deduction he passes from these principles and rules to the ap})lications and to the particular cases which naturally flow from them ; and then the method is deductive. Let us take examples. If in the teaching of grammar we first present the rule and then seek to find its appli- cations, we proceed by deduction ; but if, on the contrary, we begin by presenting to the child examples or particu- lar cases, in order that we may then suggest the idea of the rule, the process is inductive. The teacher of geom- etry who at the outset lays down axioms and definitions, and then proves tliat such or such a theorem is the necessary consequence of them, gives a demonsti'ation, METHODS IN GENERAL. 277 or, what amounts to the same thing, a series of deduc- tions. The professor of physics who appeals to the ob- servation of his pupils, who performs experiments before them, who shows them the bodies which are the subjects of study and makes an analysis of their elements, em- ploys in succesion the different processes of induction. In history also we proceed by deduction or induction, according as we set out with a definition, as of the feudal system, for example, or with the different facts which constitute the feudal system. 285. Exterior Form of Instruction ; Consecutive Exposition or Interrogation. — But instruction does not differ merely by the inductive or the deductive course which is impressed on the series of propositions ; there must also be taken into account the exterior form which is given to instruction while transmitting it to pupils. In fact, we cau proceed in two ways : we may state the object of the lesson, and, speaking authoritatively, may teach by uninterrupted discourse ; or, by interrogating pupils and making suggestions to them, we may make them discover for themselves what we wish them to learn. ^ Hence a new distinction and two different meth- ods : the method of exposition and the method of interro- gation, or socratic method. 1 Suppose we have to give a lesson on the distinctive characters of the three kingdoms of nature. I will either start with the division of the three categories of bodies, and then pass to the distinctive char- acters of minerals, vegetables, and animals, and end with examples ; or, following the same course, will proceed by interrogations, such as " What is meant by natural history 1 What is its triple object ? Of what does geology treat ? Botany ? Zoology ? What are the essential differences between minerals, vegetables, and animals ? Give examples, etc." (M. Horner, Guide pratique de I'instituteur, Paris, 1882, p. 9.) 278 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 286. Examination of the Four Essential Methods. — But let us hasten to remark that the two elements of method, order and form, are not separated in fact : on the contrary, they are united. In other terras, whether we pro- ceed by induction or by deduction, we must either expound or interrogate. Consequently there are four general methods, to which all the others are to be referred : 1. The method of induction, in the form of exposition. 2. The method of induction, in the form of interrogation. 3. The method of deduction or demonstration, in the form of exposition. 4. The method of deduction, in the form of interrogation. Each of these methods has its characteristics and its peculiar advantages. In a general w^ay it may be said that the choice between deduction and induction is deter- mined mainly by the nature of the science which is to be taught. The mathematics hardly allow the use of any method but the deductive, while the physical sciences are to be treated inductively. On the other hand, whether preference shall be given to continuous exposition or to the system of interrogation depends in great part on the age and the intelligence of the children to whom we address ourselves. When Fenelon said, though with some exag- geration, "Employ formal lessons as little as possible," he was thinking particularly of little children, to whose weakness a long, uninterrupted discourse is badly adapted. Continuous exposition is, however, necessary in a great number of cases, were it only to obviate the slowness of the instruction. On the other hand, the interrogative method has the advantage of more directly calling into play the activity of the pupil ; it is tlie method of all others for promoting the discovery of the truth, for suggesting it without imposing it. METHODS IN GENERAL. 279 287. Reduction of the Different Methods to these Four Types. — With this explanation, it is eas}' to prove that the most of the methods wrongly distinguished by edu- cators may be reduced to the four types which we have just established and are blended with them.^ For example, what is the method called the inventive except the method of induction and interrogation, — tliat which, avoiding didactic lessons, demands of the pupil a personal effort, and makes him discover for himself what we wish to teach him ? , It is useless to speak of the heuristic method, which differs in no respect from the inventive, save that inventive comes from a Latin word, and heuristic from a Greek word. Diversity of expressions should not make us think tliat there is a real diversity in methods. The demonstrative method is simply synonymous with deductive method, a demonstration being but a body of deductions. The catechetic^ method, which consists in stating ques- tions and demanding replies, does not differ essentially from the interrogative method, nor from the Socratic method, which requires the teacher, in imitation of the celebrated Greek philosopher, to stimulate the good sense and reason of his pupils by his interrogations. 1 We cannot subscribe to the opinion of M. Buisson, who, doubtless through a reaction against the abuse of multiplying methods, falls into the opposite extreme and declares that, properly speaking, there is but one method of pedagogy, a universal method which embraces the whole of education. This is the intuitive method. — See his Rapport sur I'instruction primaire a VExposition universelle de Vienne en 1875, Chap. IV. 2 This word is very fashionable in Belgium, where it is the root of a whole family of words. M. Braun defines catecJtesls, which is the lesson given in the form of questions and answers ; catechist, every man who teaches in this way ; and catechumen, the pupil instructed by this method. 280 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. It is hj an abuse of words that M. Daguet decorates with the name of methods what he calls the educative, rational, practical, and progressive methods. These are the general characteristics of instruction, the essential tendencies of modern pedagogy ; they are expressions for the ends to be pursued; truly speaking, they are not methods, — that is, co-ordinated systems of means and processes.^ There remain the so-called analytic, synthetic, intuitive, and experimental methods, upon which much fuller explana- tions are necessary.^ 288. Analysis and Synthesis. — I know of no terms more badly defined, or whose meaning has been more ob- scured by the misuse made of them, than the words analysis and synthesis. So it would cost me no regret to see them disappear from the vocabulary of pedagogy, where, with their pretentious and pompous airs, they bring nothing but great confusion and obscurity, without any positive advan- tage. Analysis and synthesis have in reality no precise meaning, save in chemistry, where they designate two inverse opera- tions which consist either in decomposing or in recomposing bodies, in separating or in uniting the elements which com- pose them. Everywhere else, in grammar, in mathematics, the words analysis and synthesis are employed only by an- alogy to express operations which have vague resemblances to the analysis and synthesis of chemistry. 1 It has been justly observed that it is wholly improper to employ the word method to designate such or such a school process, as method of reading, of writing, of arithmetic, or of drawing. " It would seem," says M. Buisson, " that there are as many methods as branches of study or school manuals." 2 We are far from having enumerated all the methods which it has pleased educators to distinguish and christen. There are still to be noted the natural, moral, historical, and universal methods. METHODS IN GENEKAL. 281 289. Confused Use of these Words. — The clearest and most accurate thinkers fail iu their efforts to define the sig- nification of analysis and synthesis. For example, Littre tells us : "The analytic method, or method of decomposition, starts from actual facts and attempts to liberate their elements. It is also called the method of discovery. The synthetic method, on the con- trary, is that which, after having recognized a great number of truths, reunites them all under a general principle, and thus forms a synthesis of them. It is also called the method of doctrine, be- cause ivhen we teach a science loe ordinarily start from general princi- ples in order to deduce from them their consequences." ^ With due deference to Littre, the last part of this defini- tion is contradictory. To deduce consequences from a gen- eral principle is not at all the same thing as to include a great number of truths under a general principle. In the first case the process is one of real deduction ; in the second, it is rather inductive. 290. Tpie So-called Analytic and Synthetic Methods. — A sufficient proof that it has been wrong to introduce the words analysis and synthesis into pedagogy, is the fact that different authors have not come to an understanding as to the use of these expressions. What some call synthesis others call analysis, and vice versa. Thus, for the greater number of educators, analysis is the equivalent of induction, of invention, of experimental re- search ; synthesis, on the contrary, is almost the same thing as deduction, demonstration, didactic exposition. But this sense, which is the true one, is not universally admitted. Swiss educators, for example, go contrary to the general usage. 1 Dictionnaire de la langue fran^aise, au mot Analyse- 282 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. " The form which is best adapted to an elementary book," says M. Daguet, " is the synthetic or jirogressive form, — that is, that which proceeds from the particular to the general. The analytic form, which proceeds from the general to the particular and be- gins with the definition, may be followed in works which are used in the higher course." ^ So also M. Horner asserts that "the synonym of dem- onstration is deduction and analysis ; that the inventive process is often confounded with induction, synthesis, and heuristic."-^ This is exactly opposed to the opinion of M. Charbonneau, according to which "the demonstrative method is also named synthetic, while the inventive is called analytic." ^ We believe that the most general usage conforms to this last opinion. But from all these hesitations and contradic- tions it seems to us to follow that it is best to leave analysis and synthesis to the language of scientists, and to eliminate them from the vocabulary of pedagogy, where they serve only to obscure a subject which of itself Is quite simple. In all cases it is easy to recollect from what we have said, that the analytic method is but another term to designate the inductive method, and the synthetic method but a syn- onym for the method of deduction and demonstration.^ 291. Is THERE AN INTUITIVE METHOD? — There could be no doubt of it, if we listen to the enthusiastic cries which from all directions salute the advent of this royal method, destined it seems to replace all others and to rogenerate instruction. And yet, if we consider things attentively, we shall be convinced that the so-called intuitive method is 1 Daguet, op. cit, p. 148. 2 Horner, op. cit., p. 12. 3 Charbonneau, Cours de pe'dagogie, p. 261. * See Appendix B. METHODS IN GENEKAL. 283 either but a special process which cau and should be con- uected with ths essential methods which we have distin- guished, or, if we understand it in its most extended sense, that it is confounded with the general spirit which ought to animate and vivify all the parts of instruction. 292. Different Senses of the Word Intuition. — Usage and fashion sometimes subject words to strange adventures. Here is the word intuition, which in the seventeenth century signified, in theological language, the immediate and mystical vision of God, and whicli, in philosophical language, signified the evidence of immaterial truths and of the knowledge of the principles of the reason ; and to-day, by some sort of confusion, this same word, de- scended from the heights of metaphysics, is employed by educators as the synonym of sensible and material percep- tion. In Switzerland, Belgium, and Germany, the intuitive method is almost alwa3's confounded with instruction through the senses, and especially with instruction through the sense of sight. " The intuitive method consists in submitting things to the direct examination of the organs of sense, and especially of sight. " Intuitive instruction is that ^Yhich is addressed to the mind and heart through the medium of the senses, and particularly of the sight." 1 293. Sensible Intuition and Intellectual Intuition. — But in France the meaning of the word ' ' intuition " has been generalized, and the intuitive method, from what our authorities in pedagogy say, comprehends something very 1 Tmilt' the'nrique et pratique de me'thodologie, par Achille V. A. Namur, 1880, p. 153. 284 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. different from lessons addressed to the senseg and teaching through the eye. There is intellectual intuition, and even moral intuition. Intellectual intuition, according to M. Buisson, is the clear and definite consciousness of all the operations of our mind. " I am conscious of my existence, of my desires, of my feelings, of my volitions ; I see them and feel them within myself, so to speak, more clearly and more distinctly than the eye sees colors or the ear hears sounds." ^ The same thing would be true of the reason also, and thus intuition returns to its primitive signification, — the immediate adhesion of the mind to the great speculative truths. As to moral intuition, M. Buisson defines it as follows : " It is taking possession at once, by the mind, the heart, and the conscience, of those axioms of the moral order and of Lliose in- demonstrable and induliitable truths which are the regulating principle of our conduct. There is an intuition of the good and the beautiful, as there is an intuition of the true ; only it is still more delicate, more irreducible to demonstrative processes, resists analysis to a greater degree, is more fugitive and more inexpli- cable, because it is complicated with elements foreign to the intelligence proper, and because it is commingled with the emo- tions, the feelings, the influences of the imagination, and the movements of the heart." 294. Intuition in its Most Restricted Sense. — From these explanations it follows, first, that intuition, and con- sequently the intuitive method, designate things that are really very different. In its most restricted sense, and taken as the synonym of 1 See Dictionnaire de pedagogic, article Intuition. METHODS IN GENEKAL. 285 sense-perception, intuition has given rise to object lessons, or the substitution of concrete realities for abstractions and words, as the first exercise of the intelligence.^ We will- ingly accept the principle laid down by Pestalozzi, that " intuition is the source of all our knowledge ; " on condition, however, that by the word source we understand onl}' the initial origin of our ideas which, borrowed first from percep- tion and observation, have then need of being elaborated by our faculties of reflection. But it is very evident that in this sense, intuition, if it is the point of departure of a method, of the inductive method, does not constitute a method by itself. Let us multiply intuitions for the child to our heart's con- tent, — that is, clear and vivid perceptions; let us even admit that intuition has something peculiar and character- istic, and that it cannot be confounded with simple percep- tion ; let us grant that it does not suffice to present an object to the sight of the child in order that there may be a real intuition, but that in order to produce this particular state of mind special conditions are required, because the eye does not always see when it looks, because the senses grow tired, and that to excite a vivid and exact impression in the mind there is a moment to be seized which is not lasting. But for all this, it remains no less true that intui- tion, from this point of view, is at most but a more pene- trating observation, a more intense perception of sensilile realities ; and that, consequently, it may properly be an important element of the method whose object is to give us an exact knowledge of things, but not this entire method, which cannot dispense with reflection, comparison, and reason. So also with respect to intellectual intuition, to that 1 See chapter third, Part Second. 286 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. which seizes axioms at a glance, the intuitive method is still but the point of departure, the rational foundation of the deductive method, which ought doubtless to be based on well-understood principles, on evident propositions, but whicli constructs on these principles, by means of reasoning, a whole superstructure of science. 295. Intuition in its Widest Sense. — But, understood in its wide sense, is intuition even then the principle of a distinct method of instruction? — In what does it consist, outside of its application to object lessons ? M. Buissou replies : " It consists in a certain march of the instruction which reserves to the child the pleasure and the profit, if not of discovery and surprise, which would perhaps be promising too much, at least of initiative and intellectual activity." ^ The intuitive method, then, would be that which, accord- ing to the saying of Fcnelon, 'Mnoves the springs of the child's soul." The purpose would be to make him judge by intuition, after having taught him to perceive by intuition. " To make the child think," says M. Buisson again, " would be the essence of the intuitive method." But is not this to force the sense of the word, still to call "intuition" the personal thought, the clear and exact intelligence, which results from the efforts of attention, the active participation of the pupil in the instruction he receives? Moreover, if tliis is the true meaning, the real pedagogical application of intuition, is it not evident that there is here no metliod, properly speaking, a method always supposing a series of processes and of means, while intuition thus understood is but the general character which pertains to all instruction? 1 Dictionnaire de p^dagogie, ai'ticle already cited. METHODS IN GENERAL. 287 Intuition ought to accompany all parts of a course of study, just as cousciousness envelops all the phenomena of the external world. It is, so to speak, the soul of every method and inspires all teaching which would not merely drily transmit the commonplaces of the soul, as the light illumines all births, but provokes the light and warmth of the spirit, and through instruction assures education ; but when all has been said, it is not a method. To say with M. Buisson that it consists not in the application of such or such a process, but in the intention and general Ijabit of making and permitting the child's mind to act in conformity with his intellectual instincts, is precisely to acknowledge that it is to pedagogy what the search for truth is to science, and the pursuit of the beautiful to poetry, — an ideal, a supreme end, but in no wise a body of practical means, or- ganized into a method. 296. Experimental Method. — We know what services have been rendered science by the substitution of the ex- perimental method for the method of pure reasoning and abstract hypothesis. The natural sciences did not really exist till the day when the experimental logic of Bacon broke with the old traditions of the syllogism, and perpet- uated a revolution which the scholars of the sixteenth century had already provided for ; till the day when thinkers had decided to observe, to experiment, and from oliserved facts to make a patient induction of the laws which gov- erned them. Henceforth sovereign in the domain of the concrete sciences, when the discovery of truth is at stake, cannot the experimental method be transported into pedagogy and applied to the teaching of the truths which it has served to discover? In other terms, in order to form and to instruct the intelligence of the child, ought not the art of education 288 PBACTICAL PEDAGOGY. to employ the processes of observation and experiment analogous to those which science has utilized for organizing itself? The reply cannot be doubtful, and it is easy to show that the methods brought into prominence by the educators of the last century are but different forms of the experimental method. What, for example, is the so-called intuitive method, but a constant appeal to experiment and observation? So the method which, under different names, is called in succession the intuitive, the heuristic, the analytic, or the inductive method, and which always consists in making the pupil dis- cover the truth which we would teach him, is but a detached fragment of the great experimental method. In a word, the experimental method is after all but another and more pretentious name for designating the whole or a part of the inductive method. 297. General Spirit of a Good Method. — All the considerations which precede have no other practical utility than that of obliging the teacher to reflect upon the princi- ples of instruction themselves, and upon the necessity of taking into account both the nature of the children to whom he addresses himself, and the nature of the knowledge which he communicates. Let no one imagine that it is sufficient, in order to teach well, to know the abstract distinctions of pedagogy. The first condition for being a good teacher is always to possess a thorough knowledge of the subject which he has to teach. An p]nglish educator, M. Laurie, justly observes, "A teacher liimself possessed of a disciplined intelligence and of a will fortified by religion, reason, and experience, may be working wisely towards the production in others of that which is in himself, and be unconsciousli/ adapting his proc- METHODS IN GENERAL. 289 esses to a sound method."^ But however well endowed he may be in respect of instruction or intelligence, he will always be inferior to a teacher who to the same personal qualities adds that which gives power, assurance, and deci- sion, — the reflective knowledge of the natural laws for the development of the intelligence, the characteristics of each school study, and consequently the methods which most easily find the route to the mind and are best adapted to each topic of instruction. 1 S. S. Laurie, Primary Instruction in Relation to Education, 1883, pp. 15, 16. CHAPTER 11. READING AND WRITING. 298. Subordination of the Different Studies. — Wjiile causing the different branches of the programme to be pursued one after another, and each by itself, the teacher will not lose sight of this general principle, that if each part ought to be studied in itself, it ought to be studied also in view of the whole; that is. it should contribute to the general education of the mind, awaken the intelligence, and furnish it with good habits of order, application, and consecutive thinking. This remark is applicable to reading and writing, which constitute the elementary basis of all instruction. 299. Reading and Writing. — For a long time read- ing and writing, along with number, constituted the entire programme of the primary schools. To-day these elementarj' branches are no more than the conditions of more complete studies, which respond more fully to the social necessities and needs of human nature. According to a very just expression, these are instrumental knowledges ; that is to say, necessary instruments for acquiring other knowledge. But reading and writing, while they are but the preliminary means of instruction, have for this very reason a special importance. <')00. Their Place in the Courses of Study. — " Read- ing and writing are necessarily the foundation of the 290 READING AND WRITING. 291 instruction given in the elementary courses," says M. Greard. "First of all, it is necessary to make this primary basis secure." But reading and writing remain till the end of the primary course one of the principal objects of the teacher's efforts. Even at the beginning and in the elementary course, reading and writing ought not of themselves to occupy the attention of the child to the exclusion of every other study. Different exercises in language, simple and familiar object-lessons, the elements of drawing, and notions of arithmetic and geography, may and should accompany them. " If it is possible," says M. Greard, " to begin the study of numbers almost at the same time, it is because spelling and nu- meration, and the tracing of letters and figures, are exercises of the same grade and almost of tlie same nature." Dreary schools are those where the pupil has no choice except between his primer and his copy-book ! Were it only for introducing variety into this monotonous work, the teacher ought to furnish the child with other occu- pations. Especially should we recollect that he is not merely to make of his pupils reading and writing machines, but that his ever-present thought should be to open and stimulate the mind by positive knowledge and by moral lessons. 301. Different Grades of Reading. — Reading, which has been defined as " the translation of written language into spoken language," seems a very simple thing to those who know how to read ; but for the child who is learning to read, nothing is more complicated or more difficult.^ "The extent and complicacy of this accom- 1 I\Ir. Bain defines it as " tlie art of pronouncing words at sight of their visible characters." 292 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. plishinent," says Mr. Bain, " make it the work of years, even when not commenced very early." When the child knows hi.s letters, over-confident parents often shout victory and think that the whole is done. The real difficulty, however, the reading of words, begins only at that point. Months are often required for the pupil to pass from saying his letters to fluent reading. We ought then to distinguish different grades of read- ing : The first grade, where the pupil learns to distinguish letters and to know their names, and where he laboriously groups them in order to pronounce syllables and words ; the second grade, where the pupil reads fluently, without hesitation, without feeling his way ; the third grade, cor- responding to what is called expressive reading. 302. Caution as to the Importance of Particular Methods. — In the teaching of elementary reading, as in all parts of instruction, we must be on our guard against the superstition of method. In truth, the spirit which animates the teacher, and the intellectual and moral qualities which distinguish him, will always be worth more than the best processes. Lakanal, speaking of a commission which the Council of the Five Hundred had called for the composition of elementary books, ex- pressed the opinion that there was not in France a single good book on the art of teachiug to read and write. " Up to this time," he said, "it is the patience of teachers and pupils that has done all." But notwithstanding the progress that has been accomplished, and though we are to-day provided with a great number of good methods, it is still upon the patience and skill of the teacher that we must mainly count. The teacher ought to know how to give animation to the reading lesson, to interest the pupil in it, and if possible to make attractive an exercise which READING AND WRITING. 293 in itself is dreary and monotonous. He will already have done much, if he has been able to inspire his pupils with the desire of learning to read. This is what Rousseau said, though with his usual exaggeration : " A great ado has been made," he says, " over finding the best methods of teaching to read. Cabinets and charts have been invented, and the child's room turned into a printing-office. Locke would have him learn to read with dice. Was not this a happy invention ? What a pity ! A surer means than all this, but one which is always forgotten, is the desire to learn. Give the child this desire, and then put aside your cabinets and your dice ; every method will then succeed well with him." To the same effect it has often been remarked that methods of reading, even the best contrived, produce results only through the manner in which they are applied. " In this part of instruction, as in all the others, the value of the process is determined by the teacher who applies it. A given instructor has obtained in his school, through the use of means which he has devised, the most satisfactory results. " Under his dkection generations of pupils have been instructed with less effort, no doubt, than would have been requii-ed elsewhere ; and he yields to the temptation, certainly very natural, to embody in a little book the method which he had invented for himself, and by this means he hopes to render to the pupils whose masters shall adopt it the same service which he has rendered his own. Unhappily the result does not always meet his expectations." ^ 303. Description of the Principal Wats of Teach- ing TO Read. — On first glancing at the innumerable proc- esses which the fertile ingenuity of educators has succes- 1 Mile. Chalamet, op. cit, p. 155. 294 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. sively brought into use for teaching to read, which fashion has patronized l)y turns, we miglit be tempted to think tliat it is impossible to reduce to unity this chaos of spell- ing-boolfs and charts of every description.^ After a little more reflection, liowever, we become convinced that this diversity, apparently infinite, is due rather to modifications of detail, and to accessory and superficial combinations, than to essential and profound differences. The first obvious distinction is that between S3'stems where the teaching of reading is Ivept separate from every- thing else and administered wholly by itself, and methods that have been very popular for a few years past, especially in Germany, which combine the teaching of writing with that of reading. Let us first consider the processes in which reading is not connected with writing. By leaving out of account the ac- cessory aids which introduce complications into them, these may be reduced to two, the method by spelling and the method by direct syllabication without spelling. 304. The Method by Spelling (Alphabetic Method). — The method most generally employed in France, notwith- standing the criticisms that have been made of it, is the old way of teaching to read, which consists first in having the letters named instead of having them pronomiced^ and then in having them grouped in order to form syllables of them. " When we reflect on all the difficulties which this method pre- sents, on the effort of abstraction it requires of cliildreii, on the labor whicli tlie deconipositiou and the reconiposition of syllables 1 On the history of the different systems of reading, see the excel- lent article Lecture, by M. Guillaume, in the Diciionnaire de p^dagogie ; also, Hall's How to teach Heading, Boston, 1887. EEADING AND WRITING. 295 supposes, on the impossibility for the pupil to grasp the correspond- ence between the letters told one after another and the composite sound which results from them ; we are astonished that with processes so defective children ever learn to read. ' Whoever knows how to read,' says Duclos, ' knows the most difficult art, if he has learned it by the common method.' " ^ 305. The Old and the New Spelling. — Each letter has received a name, but this name does not correspond to the relative value which it has as a sound in the composi- tion of words. Hence the defect, pointed out two centuries ago by the grammarians of Port Royal, in the old method of spelling. " By pronouncing the consonants separately and making children name them," says Guyot, " there is always joined to them a vowel, namely e, which is neither a part of the syllable nor of the word, and it thus happens that the sound of the letters as they are pro- nounced is entirely different from that of the letters combined. For example, the child is made to spell the word hon, that is com- posed of three lee force against force, and it is the king who brought all these people to terms." Then the master explains that the lords were not all of equal rank, and that below the master of such a castle there was a more powerful lord, and one of higher rank living in another castle. He gives a fairly connect idea of the gradations in rank, and at the top places the king. "When people are fighting with each other, who stops them ?" Reply, " The policeman.'' " Very well ; the king was a policeman. What was done with those who fought and killed somebody?" Reply : " They are brought to trial." •' Very well ; the king THE TEACHING OF HISTORY. 357 was a judge. Can we do without policemen and judges?" " No, sir." " Very well ; the ancient kings were as useful to France as policemen and judges. In the end they did evil, but they began by doing good. What did I say, — as useful ? Much more so ; for there were more brigands then than now. These lords were ferocious fellows, were they not ? " The class : " Yes, sir." " And the people, my children, were they any better ? " Unani- mous reply, in a tone of conviction : " Yes, sir." " No, no, my children. When they were cowards, the coi^imon people were terrible people. They also pillaged, burned, and killed ; they killed women and children. Reflect that they did not know what was good or what was bad. They had not been taught to read." ^ 374. The Book. — There is a great distance between this varied and attractive instruction and the method too often in use, which consists in making the pupil read a book, and sometimes making him learn it mechanically by heart. As soon as possible the teacher ought to intervene, by familiar conversations in the lower classes, and by a con- secutive exposition with the older pupils. However, we do not think of proscribing the book, which, especially in history, is necessary for accuracy in dates and the memory of facts. It would be unwise to abandon the child to the hazards of memory and the possible errors of note-books. In default of a special book, as in Germany, it is at least necessary that the reading-book, that " encyclopedia of the common school," should contain among other things the historical notions the knowledge of which is thought to be indispensable. Better still are the elementary historical books, com- posed with exclusive reference to the common schools, and 1 Eevue des Deux Mondes. 358 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. similar to those which have been published for several years in France, which avoid dryness, long nomenclatures, gene- alogies, and superfluous details, which give children general impressions, clear views, and a taste for history. 375. SuMMAKiES AND NARRATIVES. — An elementary book on history should comprise at least two essential parts, — summaries and narratives. The summaries should be as complete and at the same time as brief as possible. The pupil will learn these by heart •, for even in history there is a part for literal recitation to play. The special purpose of these summaries is to assure precision of ideas. They will fix in the child's mind the rigorous succession and order of events. By this means we shall escape the method of scattered anecdotes or of disconnected biographies, which is proper only for little children. There should not be too many narratives in an elementary book on history. The}' ought not to be learned by heart, and should receive only an attentive reading, enlivened by oral explanations, by the interrogations of the teacher, and by the responses of the pupil. It is especially b^^ these narratives that the child will be interested in the study of history ; he will find in them the portraits of great men, sketches of manners, beautiful examples, everything which characterizes the different epochs. Of course, besides the summaries and narratives, the book is also composed of a text^ more or less complete, in which the events are presented in their order and with the reflec- tions which they suggest. In a less elementary book this text will of itself constitute the whole work. 376. The Duty of the Teacher. — It cannot be too often repeated that the teacher plays the principal part in the teaching of history. THE TEACHING OF HISTORY. 359 " It was long ago that Lhamond said that the best book is the living voice of the teacher. For this purpose we do not demand that he profess; for this word suggests the idea of pedantry, and the teacher who listens to his own voice has few chances of making himself heard. Simple and modest explanations, pre- ceded or followed by questions to illustrate them, — this is what Lhomond recommended." ^ The teacher ought to explain the book, and comment on it ; but he ought also to do without the book and venture himself to sketch the narrative of an event or of an histor- ical period. Especially iu the higher course he will substi- tute the living voice for the dead book, too often not comprehended. If he will prepare himself for this in ad- vance, and know just what he is going to say, and in what order, his oral exposition will be worth much more than the best of books. 377. The Duty of the Pupil. — In the study of history, the pupil ought not to be merel}^ a reader or an attentive listener ; he must be made to speak and relate what he has learned from his book or from his teacher. No subject is better adapted to interrogations and to drill in speaking than history. Besides, as Greard reconnnends, the pupil should be invited to make a summary of the oral lesson. Short written themes and reproductions might also be re- quired of him on the subject which has been studied in the class, so that his own labor may be added to that of the teacher, and the history may not be for him, as it is too often the case, simply the occasion for eas}^ reading, accom- plished with distraction and without real profit. 378. Incidental Aids. — The imagination of teachers, and especially that of authors, has multiplied inventions of 1 M. Greard, L'Enseignemcnt primaire a Paris. Notwithstanding M. Greard, it is necessary that the teacher profess, that he be a pro- fessor. 360 PRACTICAX PEDAGOGY. every sort to facilitate the study of history. In general we count but little on these auxiliary aids, such as synoptical and genealogical tables. Nevertheless, competent educators recommend the use of mural charts. Nor are pictures in all their forms to be despised. " It is to be hoped," says M. Buisson, " that popular art, escaping finally from its trivial uses, may become with us, as it already has in other countries, a means of diffusing useful knowledge, and above all that of the national history." 379. History and Civic Instruction. — History is the natural preface to civic instruction, — that is, to notions relating to the actual constitution of the society in which the child is called to live. " The Americans," says M. Buisson, " teach history in view of political education. Tlieir reading-books contam quite numerous selections relative to the ancient republics. In modern times they dwell particularly on social and political institutions. . . . Themes like the following are assigned to the pupils : A parallel between Pitt and Washington." "Certain educators," says M. Braun, "think that his- tory and civic instruction ought to be united, and taught one with the other, one by the other." "Without going so far as to blend these two subjects, we ought not to forget the relations between them. Instruc- tion in civics can be but the coronation of historical studies ; and while relating with impartiality the history of his country, the teacher will be right in shaping his instruction in view of the political education which is proper to be given to children. 380. History and Geography. — History has still more intimate relations with geography, and the recital of histori- cal events should not be separated from a description of the country where the events took place. Geography and THE TEACHING OF HISTORY. 361 chronology, says an old adage, are the two eyes of history ; and in fact, if we do not know the theatre where men have acted, it is difficult to form a just idea of their activity. 381. Conclusion. — Thus understood, history is a truly profitable study and a branch of instruction adapted to children. Let us give ear neither to Jacotot, who denies its utility absolutely, nor to Mr. Bain, who asserts that of all the studies of youth there is none so beset with diffi- culties as history. In order to interest children, it suffices that it is at once " clear and living," according to Guizot's expression, that it appeal at once to then- imagination and to their memory. In order that it may be useful to them, it is sufficient that it be regarded above all as a school of morals and of patriotism. Doubtless, it would be assuming too much to demand that the child of the primary school should know, like a philosopher, the causes and connections of events, and that he discern the principles that lie back of facts. It is however necessary, in a certain measure, that for the ordinary child historical instruction should be something besides a simple narration of facts, and that he should be trained to judge of the good and the evil in human actions. " History is not really history," says M. Guizot, " except as we grasp the connection of events which succeed one another, and except it appear in its complete- ness as the evolution of a people." By reflection, then, let us connect the detached narratives with the great facts, and with the great personages which are as the mountain-tops of history ; let us require of the child that the chronological succession of events be clearly fixed in his mind ; let us distinguish the important periods, — all this without ceasing to be as simple, as elementary as possible, and while recol- lecting that in history, as in other things, we must know much in order to be capable of teaching a little. CHAPTER VI. THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 382. Progress in Geographical Studies. — Geograph- ical studies are surely making progress iu France. We have been so often told that we were the most ignorant people in the world in geography, tliat our sense of honor has at last been touched, and we have made serious efforts to overtake our neighbors, the Germans. Even in the common school, the teaching of geography is on a quite respectable footing. The reports of the inspectors-general show that there is progress everywhere, that geography is carefully taught, and that this study is perhaps the one that pleases pupils the most. This progress is due doubtless, above all else, to the moral effect which recent disasters have produced on our minds. Since the day when our soil was invaded and our territory mutilated by foreigners, who liy means of their maps seemed to be at home, we have better understood the importance and the value of geographical studies. But this progress is also due to the happy change which, in late years, has profoundly modified the conditions of geographical teaching. For a dry and barren nomenclature of proper names and the repetition of an unintelligible vocabulary, modern pedagogy has sulistituted a living study, full of attraction, which addresses itself to the senses and to the intelligence ; which brings before the child by vivid and clear descriptions the nook of earth where he was born, the 362 THE TEACHING OF GEOaEAPHY. 363 country for which he ought to feel willing to die if need be, and finally the entire earth, where in default of real travel he is happy to be able to make at least imaginary journeys. And at the same time that the general sphit of geographical teaching has been changed, art has placed at its service and introduced into the school new instruments of study, such as globes, maps in relief, wall maps, maps of all sorts, — in a word, a complete outfit, which facilitates the task of the teacher and enlivens the work of the pupil. 383. New Methods : Rousseau and Pestalozzi. — Of all subjects geography is the one which seems best adapted to the processes of the new pedagogy, to the method which ordains that things shall precede words. Rousseau went so far in this direction that he admitted no other means but travel for learning geography. But here, as always, he goes astray through the exaggeration of a just idea. But he at least defines with wisdom the starting-point of all geograph- ical instruction. " For Emile the two first points in geography shall be the city where he lives and the country residence of his father ; then the intermediate places, next the rivers in the vicinity. . . . Let him make a map of all this for himself." ^ Pestalozzi, like Rousseau, demanded that the teaching of geography should be connected with the first sensations of infancy. At Burgdorf he made the pupils observe the little tract of country where they lived, not upon a map, but upon the very soil. Through the sight of actual things he gave them an idea of hills, mountains, rivers, and of the various geographical features. Then, when the child, through direct intuition, or at least by analogy, by proceeding from tlie small to the 1 Emile, Book III. 36^ 1'i.A.CTICAL PEDAGOGY. great, from the puddle of water to the sea, from a ditch to a river, has acquired a knowledge of the terms iu physical geography, Pestalozzi initiated him into political geography by analogous methods. Taking us a starting-point the family residence, he thence directed the children's attention to the village, the church, the school-house, the mayor's office, the route which led to the city, the city itself, and to the magistrates who resided there. Finally, proceeding to mathematical geography, he placed the pupil in presence of astronomical phenomena and made him observe the rising and setting of the sun, the Great Bear and the Pole-star ; thus he drilled him in finding the points of the compass, and determining the position of one place through its relation to another. 384. Definition of Geography. — It would not be exact to say, with an American author, that " Geography is not so much a science in itself, as it is a collection of matter belonging to a number of sciences." ^ On the contrary, the object of geography is perfectly definite, — it is the description of the surface of the earth; it studies everything that relates to the form of our globe, and to the exterior and superficial phenomena of the earth ; though it must be admitted that certain geographers, taking advantage of the fact that their science has some sort of relation to everything, extend their domain perhaps beyond all proper bounds. Geography has such intimate relations with several other sciences that a natural tendency impels the geographer to pass the frontier which separates it from them. On the pretext that watercourses are fed by the rain, geography ought not to permit itself to become a course in physics and in meteorology. Because the description of the 1 Wickersham, Methods of Instruction, p. 367. THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 365 soil affords an indication of the nature of the rocks, geog- raphy must not be confounded with geology. And so with botany, zoology, and political economy ; we must not take advantage of their relations with geographical studies, to trespass upon their peculiar domain. This caution has not always been observed. Thus Mr. Bain takes as a starting-point in the study of geography a series of lessons upon tools and instruments, minerals, plants, and animals. In our opinion, geography must not be encumbered with these parasitic notions which have only an indirect relation to its proper object. But we would not forbid the teacher of geography to make any incursion on the subjects that border on the study of geography itself. It is both profitable and interesting to enrich this subject in every way possible, as by giving an explanation of the facts which it relates, or by giving ani- mation to the instruction by interesting and fruitful com- parisons. 385. The Utility of Geography. — First, geography pursues the same end as history. If, so to speak, the his- tory of France is the soul of the country, the national geography is its body. In its way it teaches patriotism by making known the territory of the country, and the frontiers that have been lost and those that have been saved ; and by making the child love the beautiful soil of France, its agree- able and temperate climate, and the natural riches that make it a privileged country. The Pere Girard, in his Explication du jylan de Fribourg, exhibited, though with some exaggeration, the moral bear- ings of geography. " Geography," he said, " is marvelously adapted to this sublime purpose. . . Let the reader judge of this from the following- essay. Aa au harinoiiioiis whole, it is an introduction to social 366 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. life, which speaks to the sense and to the mind, and which surely ought to say something to the heart. It is calculated to inspire love of country and the emotions which are associated with it." However, let us not overstate the ease and say that the principal aim of geographical instruction is to develop the intelligence and the heart, " to stimulate the religious senti- ment." No; geography is chiefly valuable on the score of its practical utility. It fiuuiishes the future artisan with the necessary knowledge, the positive notions, which he will need in his trade or industry. Besides, it has the merit of intro- ducing the mind to the world of science proper, and of reveal- ing to it some of the laws of nature.-' 386. Division OF Geography. — Everybody understands the distinction between physical geography and political geography. Physical geography, says the Dictionnaire of Littiv, is the description of the earth with respect to the division of its surface into continents, oceans, valley's, mountains, etc. Political geography is the description of the earth with respect to societies and states. In other terms, physical geography studies the natural features of the earth, while political geography adds to these the consideration of the work of man, the description of the inhabitants, of their industries, and of their social life. It is evident that the study of physical gcogra})hy should precede that of i)olitieal geography, but it may be profitable, even in an elementary course, to unite the two subjects, were it only to create an interest. " Ordinarily, physical geography is sharply distinguished from political geography. This separation is a mistake, and hardly 1 For a somewhat different view of the value of geography, see Appendix D. THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 367 facilitates the process of learning quickly and well. On the contrary, the practice of teaching proves that physical and polit- ical details are mutually complementary and helpful, and that the former aids in retaining the latter, and vice versa." ^ There is still to be distinguished astronomical geography, which is a description of the earth with reference to the heavens, the climates, and the seasons ; and economic geog- raphy, which treats of the industrial productions of each country, of agriculture and commerce. But the first may, in a sense, be connected with physical geography, and the second with political geography. Mr. Bain gives a very high significance to physical geog- raphy, which holds an intermediate place, he says, between the ordinary geography and the higher sciences, physics, chemistry, meteorology, botany, zoology, and geology. It introduces considerations of cause and effect into geographi- cal facts, by selecting and stating in empirical form the prin- ciples methodically taught in the regular and fundamental sciences. "A course of physical geography is subsequent and sup- plementary to proper geography," — which Mr. Bain calls descriptive geography, — " while reacting upon it in a way that causation operates upon the knowledge of facts." ^ M. Buisson has eloquently characterized the scope of an advanced instruction in physical and political geography. " Through the progress accomplished in their respective domains by the physical and natural sciences, and also by the historical and political sciences, geography neither is nor can be any longer an isolated and restricted science. It does not merely describe, but it explainfT. The sight of actual phenomena suggests both for the past and for the future the most fruitful inductions: irreg- ularities of surface, which were formerly regarded as so many 1 M. Foncin, Le Deuxieme Anne'e de geographie. 2 Education as a Science, p. 279. 368 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. freaks of nature, have found their laws, their causes, their place, in one universal harmony. The whole surface of the earth be- comes a living and moving world, and the monotony or the disorder which ignorance saw in them gives place to lofty gen- eral conceptions, as important for their practical applications as for their scientific import. It is no longer required to retain names, but to grasp grand phenomena, both in their aggregate and in their details. It is the physiognomy of a whole oro- gra^ic relief, of a whole hydrographic system, which must be considered ; it is the structure and the configuration of each region which must be grasped in order to connect with them the innumerable phenomena which depend upon them, and no one of which is a thing of chance, from the peculiarities of soil and climate to those of the fauna and the flora which are there de- veloped. When we come to know in this way the physical theatre where human activity is to be displayed, is there anything richer in the way of instruction than historical, political, and statistical geog- raphy ? The )noment we enter upon this science, the study con- stantly presents a double movement, that which is exercised on man by the situation, climate, form, and nature of the country where he lives, and in return that which man displays for modi- fying all these circumstances, for opposing them, or for making use of them for deriving profit from the earth and the soil, the air and the sea, according to the degree of intelligence and energy with which he is endowed. Thus the study of geography is not divorced from that of civilization ; it is a sort of universal mon- ument, on which is engraved in all its striking episodes, from the age of caverns and lake-dwellings to the hour in which we now live, the history of the influences of nature on man, and of the conquests of man over nature. It is of this science, thus under- stood, that Herder was able to say with exultation, ' Charge geography with aridity ! We might as well charge the ocean with dryness.' " ^ 387. Why this Study should Begin early. — As Nicole L'Instruction primaire a Vienne, p. 185. THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 369 had already remarked, " Geography is a study very proper for childreu ; " Hrst, because it depends greatly upon the senses; then, because it is really entertaining; finally, be- cause it requires no reasoning, which is well-nigh lacking at that age. Let us add that other studies cannot dispense with geog- raphy. History and geography should go hand in hand. On the contrary, it is Mr. Bain's opinion that the study of geography should be delayed, on the ground that geographi- cal notions involve the faculty of pure conception, — tbat is, of the representative imagination, witliout any appeal to emotion and sentiment. But, in opposition to Mr. Bain, we think that the faculty of concrete conception is l)igbly devel- oped in the child, and besides, that it is possible to give a living interest to the study of geography. 388. Two Methods possible. — In history we raised the question whether it was best on the start to give the child a general view of the course of the centuries, or to proceed by partial studies and by periods. Likewise in geography it is a question whether it is better at first to give a general idea of the whole world, or to concentrate the ]>eginner's attention exclusively on the geography of his own country, and not undertake the geography of Europe and the globe till a later period. The reply cannot be doubtful. The point of departure in geographical instruction is certainly in the study of local geography. Between the ancient system, which first studied the globe, which began where we ought to finish, as Pere Greard said, and the new method, which starts from the vil- lage or the city, where the pupil lives, and extends from place to place till it finally embraces the entire earth, there can be no hesitation in our choice. But, on the other hand, the child must not be kept too long 370 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. on thes^ preparatory studies. The teaching of geography, — that is, a sciuuce whose object is the description of the eartli, — would not respond to its definition nor to its purpose, if tlie child were not placed as soon as possible in the pres- ence of the earth. General geography ought to be united and combined with local geog)'ai)hy. All portions of geog- raphy are in some sort co-ordinate, while the periods of history, to a certain extent, are independent one of another. Hence a profound difference in the methods to be followed. " After tlie preliminary notions drawn from the child's knowl- edge of the department, and before he enters upon a detailed study of France, I would have the teacher," says M. Levasseur, an authority on this subject, " with globe in hand, give in a few hours a general idea of the form of the earth and of its oceans and continents. It is important that the child should clearly know what place France occupies in Europe, the situation of Eui'ope upon the globe, and what the form of the earth is." ^ 389. National Geography. — The centre of geographical instruction in the common school ought to be our own coun- try. In French schools, France is tl^e point of departure and the goal of the geographical excursion which is pro- posed to the child ; but there are rightly added to this general notions of the geography of Europe and of other parts of the world, just as in history the national history is completed by some notions of general history. And as in history it is necessary for real mental enlighten- ment to compare the present with the past, so in geography it is well to institute frequent comparisons between one's own country and foreign countries. " Tell the pupil that France produces seventeen million tons of coal a year, and he yawns and at once forgets the number; but tell him that France produces only one-eighth as much coal 1 As to sequence in the study of geography, see Appendix A THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 371 as England, and he understands you, and, as a Frenchman, is touched to the quick." 390. The Correct Method. — Then let us follow the method which consists in starting from the village school, but on the condition that we do not forget to go farther. A teacher may halt so long in giving details on the commune and the canton that at the end of several months he has not gone beyond them. As soon as possible the instruction in geography should open vast horizons to the child, and ex- tend his vision over the entire world. " Certainly," says M. Elisee Reclus, "we must always take as a starting-point what the child sees ; but does lie see nothing more than the school and liis village? That is the tip of his abode; he also sees the infinite heaven, the sun, stars, and moon. He sees the storms, the clouds, the rain, the distant horizon, the mountains, the hills, the downs or simple undulations, and trees and shrubs. Let him attentively notice all the.se things, and let them be described to him. Tiiis is the real geography, and to learn it the child has not to go beyond the things which surround him, and which are exhibited to him in their infinite variety." To-day the method of geographical teaching seems to be everywhere established in accordance with this spirit. Mr. Bain says "that geograpiiy, after arithmetic, is the study that is most advanced in respect of method." This method may be defined as follows : " The teacher will speak to the children principally of the things they have seen. After a rain he will show them the ravines which the water has worn in the sand of the yard, the manner in which this water forms lakes, surrounds islands, de- scends slopes in thin streams which finally unite to form large brooks farther down, and explain to them how they have before their eyes a picture in miniature of rivers and of their affluents. "He will make them notice that the sun illumines the school in 372 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. a different waj'^ morning and evening, and will teach them to know the points of the compass and to find their bearings. " He will trace for them the plan of the school on the board, and accustom them to distiuguish what is at the right from what is at the left, what is in front from what is in the rear. He will not fear to insist on this process, to measure if need be, in the presence of the children and with their aid, the length of the walls, the width of the court and the garden, and to record these measurements on the board. He will also trace a plan of the neighborhood of the school, or even of the village, and will have attained his purpose in this respect when his pupils are capable of showing upon this plan, with the pointer, the road which must be followed to go from the church to their homes." 391. The Function of Memory. — Formerly geography was recited ; to-day it is at the same time told and shown. It is told, — that is, the teacher gives an exposition of the subject : he gives a lesson in geography as he does in his- tory. It is shown, — that is, an incessaHt appeal is made, either to the very reality or to a picture of it reproduced by maps. "With very young children," says M. Levasseur, "the teacher will scarcely indicate the relations of cause and effect, which or- dinarily surpass the ability of a nascent intelligence ; he will rely on descriptions, and he will cause the different conceptions of geography to be understood, as much as possible by pictui-es, by sensible forms, and whenever possible by the sight of the objects themselves and by familiar examples." However, there is a part for memory to play ; in all grades of geographical study there are things which the child ought to be capable of reciting. As the multiplication-table is not learned without a mechanical and habitual use of the memory, so we cannot dispense with learning by heart the names of geographical positions. THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 373 " The teaching of the geographical nomenclature seems to us to be one of the three principal points in the study of geography, and this nomenclature ought to be learned by heart. We first cause the word to be learned, without which the precision of the idea would be lost; but let us illustrate this nomenclature by such notions as will give to each word a fit idea." ^ Of course these words, at the same time that they are intrusted to the memory, ought to be localized on the map by the imagination of the child. 392. Maps in General. — Geography has always been learned by the aid of maps ; but it is particularly in our time that the process of map-making has been perfected and really adapted to the needs of the cliild. " Means of expression in geography," says M. Buisson, " are be- coming perfected so rapidly that before long the entire ancient system of cartography will be no more than a dead language." ^ Without entering into details which would be appropriate in a complete study of the subject, and which will be found in special works, let us indicate at least a few essential points. We must first distinguish ready-made maps which are shown to the pupil from those which he is required to pre- pare for himself. Ready-made maps are either maps in atlas form or wall- maps. 393. Maps in Atlas Form. — These maps are made to be seen near at hand and to give detailed information ; but there is danger, however, of placing too much upon them, and of multiplying the signs so as to prevent a clear and 1 Article Geographic, in the Dictionnaire de P^dagogie. 2 L' Instruction primaire a Vienne, p. 186. 374 PEACTICAL PEDAGOGY. definite view. The best will be the simplest and the clear- est. The most scientific and the most beautiful are not always the most useful from an educational point of view. The custom has now been introduced of no longer separat- ing the map from the text ; but separate atlases should not be discarded. 394. Wall-maps. — Wall-maps are not less necessary than maps in atlas form. They are made to be seen at a distance, to give contours, broad lines, and general views. They are especially designed to call into play the faculties of the child, his memory and his reason. It is on the smaller maps that he first learns geography ; but it is on the wall-map that the pupil is interrogated, and this is wh}' certain geographers think that this study-map ought by pref- erence to be unlettered. It is with the same intent that on German wall-maps the names of rivers and mountains are written in very small characters, so that pupils cannot read them mechanically and are obliged to recognize them by their form and position. " Wall-maps," says M. Buisson, " are the most important geo- graphical apparatus of the primary school. The Germans have seen sooner than we have all the importance which is to be as- cribed to them. The great physical maps of the five divisions of the world, by Von Sydow, have made an epoch in geographical teaching; they have proved that we can place within the range of the schools a graphic representation, at once compendious enough to be very striking and scientific enough to give of each important division an exact, if not complete, idea."^ 395. Relief Maps. — The services which can be rendered by relief maps are universally recognized. " What is done on ordinary maps may lie done at least with as much advan- 1 L' Instruction primaire « Vienne, p. 196. THE TEACHING OF GEOGKAPHY. 375 tage on relief maps represeuting the different geograpliicnl features, or merely those of such or such a country." ^ Of course we must be on our guard against exaggeration in such matters. Ingenuity has taken hold of relief maps, and has often made of them a fancy article, purely conven- tional, a plaything rather than an instrument of study. ^ But, with these reservations, it is undeniable that relief maps are the best of all for giving the child an exact idea of the country, for raising him to the conception of the reality of which the map is but a picture.'^ 396. Maps Drawn by the Pupil. — The first thing to do, and it is not without difficulty, is to teach pupils to read the map and to find their own place upon it. The official pro- gramme recommends that in the elementarj' course there be simply given an idea of the mode of representation by maps and that the child be drilled in the reading of plans and maps ; but for the intermediate and higher courses, it demands exercises in map-drawing on the blackljoard and on paper, without tracing, and also exercises in map- drawing from memory. These exercises need no justification. They train the pupil's hand, they are a preparation for drawing, and are the most direct means of fixing geographical facts in the mind. "The drawing of maps," says Mr. Bain, "impresses a country, just as copying a passage in a book impresses the author's language and meaning." But care must be taken not to maKe a misuse of exercises in map-drawing, the first defect of which, when indiscreetly 1 Conduite des e'coles chretiennes, p. 59. 2 The most valuable helps to geography are models, and if these could be multiplied in schools the conceptions of the general form of countries would be vastly enhanced. (Bain, op. cit., p. 276.) 376 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. employed, is to take altogether too much time. Specialists recommend that there be required only map-drawings but slightly complicated and comprised within natural limits ; this last recommendation excludes maps which represent only an isolated department. 397. The Globe. — The inventive art of our contempo- raries has devised even globes in relief ; liut these attempts " seem destined," says M. Buisson, " to give intuitions that are grosslj' false," without any advantage to compensate for this greater disadvantage. It is otherwise with ordinary globes, which render impor- tant services to instruction. " Besides cosmographic notions, the indispensable complement of geography, there is a mass of large comparisons between seas, continents, divisions, and configurations of tlie earth's surface, which are almost impossible without the frequent use of the sphere." ^ 398. Text-Books. — " Formerly," says M. Buisson, " these were the principal means of instruction. Geogra- phy was taught from a compendium of a few pages bristling with proper names, and calculated to repel the mind the most thirsty for knowledge." However, the text-book must not be absolutely proscribed ; it is sufficient to reduce the importance which it had in the old methods. It is especially necessary that it be well written, that the text alwa3's be illustrated by a map placed on the opposite page, and if need be by illustrations. The Americans have brought into fashion, and the French have copied from them, these ele- mentary books in which the child finds, along with the defini- tion of geographical terms, a gulf, an island, a cape, a mountain, at the same time delineated in a picture and rep- resented on a small map. 1 Schrader. THE TEACHING OF GEOGRAPHY. 377 399. The Function of the Teacher. — In geography, as in other subjects, the voice of the teacher is the great teach- ing instruineut. It impresses on the intelligence of the pupil the first decisive impetus ; it illustrates the points that are obscure, and gives animation to the instruction. But the oral exposition of geographical notions has special need of being sustained by a collection of school apparatus, by the geographical aids of which we have attempted to give an idea. 400. Critical Observations. — Let us here collect for th« teaching of geographv, as we have done for the other l)ranches of instruction, some of the critical observations of the inspectors-general. " Geography is made an exercise of the memory. Instruction is given from the book, and not from the map. Geography is regarded as hardly more than a knowledge of names. Enough geographical sketches are not made on the blackboard. The study of geography generally begins too late. Sufficient use is not made of the globes which adorn the teacher's room or remain covered with dust. Pupils do not know what latitude and longi- tude are. Too much stress is put on geographical terms, which, uistead of being presented to the child in succession, and to meet the wants of each lesson, are taught in a mass before going to anything else." Finally, geography ought to become more and more a knowledge of things, and not, as it former!}' was, a knowl- edge of words. It ought to be a prolific mine of positive knowledge, which gives the child information, not only on the natural features and physical phenomena of his country, but also on its industrial resources and its economic phe- nomena. Moreover, it will not limit its instruction to the sentimental frontiers of France. In a time when the coun- try is making great efforts to develop its colonial power and 378 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. its territories beyond sea, it is right and it is necessary that geography should make known to the sons of our working- )uen and peasants the physical and economical resources of distant countries. By this means there will be developed among some of them a taste for travel and colonial enter- prises, and our possessions will not remain colonies without colonists. CHAPTER VII. THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 401. The Teaching of the Sciences in the Common School. — Instiuction iu the sciences has been uoticcably enhirged and developed in the programme of our common schools. At all times arithmetic has been taught in them, and constituted, with reading and writing, the three elements of the old instruction ; but to-day the programme comprises, besides arithmetic, geometry, and also the ordinary elements of the physical and natural sciences. 402. Importance of Arithmetic. — Belgian teachers count no less than twelve distinct results from the teaching of arithmetic. Without desiring to adopt an enumeration so complicated and so pedantic, we call attention to tlie fact that arithmetic, of all the subjects taught in the school, is the one that contributes most to the training and develop- ment of the faculties of reflection, and particular^ the reason. Doubtless grammar, history, and geography, when well taught, may co-operate iu this education ; but while they call into exercise the reason only occasionally and acci- dentally, we may affirm that arithmetic gives it constant exercise. The abstract sciences in general, proceeding by trains of reasoning and rigorous demonstrations, have the farther advantage of compelling the mind not to be satisfied with mere words. They accustom it to demand perfect clearness, absolute precision, logical and concise sequence. 379 380 PEACTICAL PEDAGOGY. " Mathematics . . . has a marked and peculiar method or char- acter ; it is by pre-eminence deductive or demonslratire, and exhib- its in a nearly perfect form all the machinery belonging to this mode of obtaining truth. Laying down a very small number of first principles, either self-evident or requiring very little effort to prove them, it evolves a vast number of deductive truths and applications, by a procedure in the highest degree mathematical and systematic. Now, although it is chiefly in the one domain of Quantity that this machinery has its fullest scope, yet, as in every subject that the mind has to discuss there is a frequent resort to the deductive, demonstrative, or downward procedure, as con- trasted with the direct appeal to observation, fact, or induction, a mathematical training is a fitting equipment for the exercises of this function. The rigid definition of all leading terms and no- tions ; the explicit statement of all the first principles ; the onward march by su.ccessive deductions, each one reposing on ground already secured ; no begging of either premises or conclusions ; no surreptitious admissions ; no shifting of ground ; no vacillation in the meanings of terms ; — all this is implied in the perfect type of a deductive science. The pupil should be made to feel that he has accepted nothing without a clear and demonstrative reason, to the entire exclusion of authority, tradition, prejudice, or self- interest." ^ Of course it is priucipally au advanced course iu mathe- matics which admits of these characteristics and assures these advantages to the general training of the mind ; but even iu its elemeutary stage the study of the matheuuitics will result on the start in imposing on the pupil a great con- centration of attention ; for iu mathematical truths there is complete interdependence and connection, and a single moment of inattention causes the whole fruit of previous toil to be lost. Besides, the rigorous character of mathenuitical demonstration accustoms the i^upil not to take up with words, not to yield except on proof. There is no better 1 Bain, Education as a Science, pp. 148, 149. THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 381 school for teaching order, precision, and at the same time continuity and rigor in thinking.^ 403. Practical Utility of Arithmetic. — But without speaking longer of the advantages of arithmetical study con- sidered as a mental discipline, it is evident that this instruc- tion is indispensable b}' reason of its practical utility. To know how to compute is l)ut little less necessary than to know how to read and write. Even ignorant peasants who can do without reading to no great disadvantage, cannot do without making simple calculations as to their expenses, the wages they ought to receive, the sacks of wheat which they have to sell, aud the animals which they tend. Computation is of daily and universal use. 404. The Child's Taste for Numbers. — We miglit think that on account of their general character of abstrac- tion, exercises in number would not suit the taste of the child, fond above all else of sense perceptions. But this is not so. " In the large number of classes of very different grades which it has been our privilege either to inspect or to visit, we have often observed tliat arithmetic was one of the things with reference to which the child manifested the most vividly that joy in learning which comes to him so naturally, when we do not carefully spoil it by throwing around him things that are difficult and incoherent." 2 1 " Numbers," says M. f rieh, " is a positive science, and there are no two different ways of conceiving its primal elements. In it every- thing is fixed and invariable, so that the wisest mathematician and the yomigest pupil of a primary school find the same result by employing exactly the same process. What is particularly remarknble in the science of numbers is that everything is related and connected with a precision that is perfect ; one notion prepares for another, and one principle aives rise to another." 2 Mademoiselle Chalamet, op. cit., p. 165. 382 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 405. Three Courses in Arithmetic. — In all the grades of the commou school the programme requh'es exercises in mental and written arithmetic ; but it distributes the matter of instruction progressively, reserving theory mainly for the higher course. In the elementary course the four rules may be applied intuitively to numbers that do not exceed 100. So nmch for mental arithmetic. The tallies of addition and multiplica- tion are studied. For written work pupils are drilled on tlie first three rules by the use of whole numbers. Division is limited to divisors which contain no more than two figures. Simple problems, oral or written, complete the instruction. In the intermediate course, after a review, which is par- ticularly necessary in arithmetic, in a science where sequence is so important, the division of whole numbers is learned ; the study of fractions is begun ; the four rules are applied to decimal numljers ; and the legal system of weights and measures is studied. It is more and more required that the problems give rise to rational solutions. In the higher course, a new review with more marked attention to theories and to the reasoning process, the metric system is thoroughly learned. The most difficult parts of the arithmetic are taken up, such as prime numbeis, the divisi- bility of numbers, prime factors, and the greatest common divisor. The methods of reduction to unity, applied to the solution of problems in interest, discount, etc., are also studied. 406. General Method. — Intuitive in its early stages, and practical at every step in its development, — such ought to be the instruction in aritlunetic in the common school. The method of study in this science is henceforth fixed, and Mr. Bain could say that " tiie method of teaching arithmetic is, perhaps, the best understood of any of the methods con- cerned with elementary studies." THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 383 Let us add, that without ceasiug to be practical the method in arithmetic should teud to give children a rational knowl- edge of the science of computation. It is not enough for the child to be mechanically drilled in the operations of arithmetic ; it is necessary that he comprehend them, that he render to himself an account of them. By this means he will not only compute better and more surely, but his mind will at the same time be strengthened and refined. " Par- ticularly in arithmetic, to comprehend is to apprehend." The first requirement is that the child gain an exact idea of number, — an idea which is complete only when it contains the ideas of augmentation and diminution, of addition and subtraction. 407. Material Aids. — As a means of making a begin- ning in numeration, educators recommend tlie use of small pieces of wood. As a matter of fact, all concrete objects are adapted to this purpose, :ind the choice is unimportant. The essential thing is, not to plunge the child all at once into the study of abstract numbers, l)ut to resort at first to in- tuition, to intuitive computation ; and for this puri>ose real objects should be employed, placed in the hands of the child, or points and lines draAvn on the blackboard and pre- sented to the pupil's eye. " Much is involved in the first attempts to work upon number. The distinction between one number and another is shown to the eye l)y concrete groups of various things, the identity of number appearing under disparity of materials and of grouping. Ideas are thus acquired of unity, of two, three, etc., up to ten in a row. ... At Hhe outset small tangible objects are used, — balls, pebbles, coins, apples ; then larger objects, as chairs and pictures on a wall. Finally dots or short lines, or some other plain marks, are the representative examples to be deposited in the mind as the near- est approach to the abstract idea." ^ 1 Bain, op. cit., p. 288. 384 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 408. Transition from the Concrete to the Abstract. — M. Horuer very clearly states the process to be followed for gradually withdrawing the mind from the consideration of concrete objects and leading it to the abstract notion. It is first necessary, he says, to show the child material objects, or at least strokes drawn on the board, representing numbers and their combinations. Then, when the child has gained sufficient skill to work with objects, we must conceal these objects from his sight and employ concrete numbers, as 8 nuts, 6 tables, 8 chairs, etc. A new step has now been taken, and after these concrete numbers have been used for some time, the final step in the series must be taken, — we must divest the number of its sensible garment and employ abstract numbers. 409. Numeral Frames. — Instead of employing the first objects at hand, we may resort to apparatus, especially to numeral frames, which are machines designed to facilitate the early steps in numeration. This device is no doubt serviceable at the beginning of instruction in number ; but we must guard against the abuse of these material means of numerical intuition, lest they go counter to the end we are pursuing. The numeral frame has been severely criticised. "This instrmnent," says M. Eugene Rambert, "corrupts instruc- tion in arithmetic. Thje principal utility of this instruction is to call into early exercise the child's faculties of abstraction, — to teach him to see with the head, through the eyes of the mind. To place things before the bodily eyes is to go directly counter to the spirit of this instruction. Nature has given children their ten fingers for a numeral frame ; and instead of giving them another, they should be taught to do without the first as soon as possible. It is said that this device makes the teacher's explanations much easier. I have no doubt of this. By means of the numeral frame the child soon makes out that 10 and 10 are 20 ; but the child who THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 386 counts only in this way loses his time, while the one who has counted in his head has engaged in the most useful of exercises. There is needed a complement and corrective for instruction through the sense of sight, and it is most readily found in com- putation." 1 There is some exaggeration in this sentiment, and it would apply more justly to counting-machines. Most teachers recommend the numeral frame for the maternal school, and express the wish that it may be introduced into the common school, at least for the elementary course. It must be intel- ligently used, however, so as to facilitate the pupil's labor without suppressing it.^ 410. Counting-machines. — The tilings to be condemned without hesitation are arithmometers, or counting-machines, very complicated pieces of mechanism, real mills, which fur- nish the result of proposed operations and relieve the pupil of labor. The use of apparatus, whatever it may be, ought not to make us forget the necessity of mental calculation. 411. Mental Arithmetic. — Educational opinion is defi- nitely settled as to the value and necessity of mental arith- metic, — that is, of computation made in the mind, without resorting to written numbers. First, mental arithmetic is an excellent mental gymnastic, because it compels the attention to fall back upon itself, to occupy itself with what is within, without the aid of any material instrument. Moreover, mental arithmetic responds to the necessities of 1 Quoted by M. Buisson, L' Instruction primaire a Vienne, p. 212. 2 The numeral frame has been in use since 1812. It is said that it came from Russia, and that Russia herself borrowed it from China. 386 PliAUTICAL PEDAGOGY. daily life. How many times do we need to solve with rapid- ity little problems of domestic economy which demand but a moment's reflection ! The merchant and the housewife have not the time to resort to written calculation ; they have not always at hand pen, paper, and ink. They need to find an immediate solution. Finally, mental arithmetic is a preparation for written arithmetic. At first mental computation will be required, especially of beginners ; but during the whole length of the course in arithmetic, mental work will accompany written work. "Mental computation," says M. Rendu, "is to the mind what gymnastic exercises are to the body. ... It has its processes, its methodical and progressive procedure, its great variety of exer- cises, its numerous applications. Like all other lessons, it de- mands a thorough preparation." Certain English teachers are accustomed to use the term economic arithmetic to describe the arithmetic proper for the primary school. " The purpose of teaching arithmetic in elementary schools, apart from its influence as a discipline, is attained when such a command has been given over numbers as enables a young man or woman to calculate with facility all those questions which arise in the ordinary course of life. This may be called economic arithmetic." ^ 412. Choice of Problems. — The subject of the prob- lems ought to ])e l)orrowed from the ordinary circumstances of life, from the facts of rural or industrial economy. The choice ought to vary with the conditions of the child's life ; it will be one thing in the city and another in the country. 1 Laurie, Primary Instruction, p. 107. THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 387 "There is an important principle of economy in education," say« Mr. Bain, " that applies to arithmetic, but not to it alone ; that is, the utilizing of the questions or exercises, by making them the medium of useful information. Instead of giving unmeaning numbers to add, subtract, multiply, and so on, we might, after the more preliminary instances, make every question contain some important numerical data relating to the facts of nature or the conventional usages of life, anticipating, as far as may be, the future exigencies of the pupils in their station in life. . . . For example, the leading dates in chronology might be embodied in a variety of questions." ^ 413. The Function of Memory. — Mr. Spencer some- where says that the multiplication table is now often learned by the experimental method. We confess that we do not quite understand the thought of the English educator. Mr. Bain is very much nearer the truth when he says : " The memory has to receive with firmness and precision all that is included in the addition and nmltiplication tables ; and the test of aptitude for the subject is the readiness to come imder this discipline. It is a kind of memory that in all probability depends on a certain maturity or advancement of the brain ; so that no amount of concrete illustration will force it on before its time. .... The multiplication table is a grand effort of the special memory for symbols and their combinations, and the labor is not to be extenuated in any way. The associations must be formed so as to operate automatically, — that is, without thinking, inquir- ing, or reasoning; and for this we must trust to the unaided adhesiveness due to mechanical iteration." ^ 414. The Metric System. — The study of the metric sys- tem is connected with that of arithmetic proper. Here again it is important to show to children the objects themselves, the metre, the litre, etc. It would amount to nothing to 1 Bain, op. cit, p. 292. 2 Baui, op. cit., pp. 289, 290. 388 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. learn by heart the abstract words whose meaning has not been clearly fixed in the mind by the concrete realities. " Do you speak of the metre ? Cause the pupil to measure the length of the school-room, of the l)enches, the board, the pupil's desk. The decimetres, the centimetres, the millimetres will naturally present themselves ; and if the children cany a stick of the length of a metre, they will ask to have the .subdivisions marked upon it." "Instruction through the sense of sight," says M. Buisson, " is applied naturally and without any difficulty to the metric system." It has been justly observed that the tables of the metric system will not suffice. Each school should have in addi- tion a collection of real weights and measures, which the child can see and handle. 415. Results of Instruction in Arithmetic. — Here are some of the faults reported by the inspectors in the lessons in number : " A more frequent use of mental calculation should be required. — There are too many theoretical demonstrations. — The jiupils who have the best knowledge of the metric system are greatly embarrassed when they handle the metre or the balance. — Most teachers forget that primary instruction ought to be eminently practical. — The work is too abstract and too mechanical. Memory plays the principal part, and the reasoning process is wanting. — The pupil counts tolerably well, but he is usually unable to explain what he has done, for the vei'v simple reason that he has not been accustomed to reason. The intuitive method is mainly followed with the youngest children ; but the moment the pupils know how to apply the four fundamental processes, all trace of the method disappears. Theoretical questions ai'e put aside, and books of problems replace the teacher's instruction. Mental calculation is taught without method, and when we interrogate the pupil he THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 389 seems to employ the same processes as though he had a pen or pencil at liis disposal. The study of number is too often reduced to an exercise of memory, and children do not acquire the art of reckoning in the mind, so useful as a mental gymnastic, and so in- dispensable to those who must do without pen and paper for making their computations. The elements of arithmetic are not made sensible enough. The meclianism of the operations is learned; but pupils do not comprehend clearly enough what they do and why they do it. Too many teachers are still fond of abstractions. They cannot make up their minds to teach number by means of the numeral frame, pebbles, and sticks; but they always begin by having the numbers written before the children have an exact idea of quantity. The metric system is taught, but no one has seen a metre." The same reports state some instances of progress in the teaching of arithmetic. " Arithmetic is of all the subjects the one which gives the best results. In most schools the computation is done well enough and quickly enough with the pen or pencil in hand ; but pupils are not sufficiently accustomed to mental work. Calculation is taught from the first entrance at school, at first mentally and orally, then with written numbers. Teachers ai-e rarely found who limit themselves to mechanical operations upon abstract numbers. The problems are practical and well chosen. The instruction in arithmetic is rational ; the demonstration is always made at the blackboard, and the definitions serve only to sum up and fix the reasoning processes." 416. Geometry in the Common School. — In the pro- gramme of 1882 geometry appeared for the first time as a topic of obligatory instruction in the common school. It surely cannot be intended to push very far the study of a sci- ence which comprises parts of such superiority and difficulty. It is intended simply to borrow from it some notions which are the natural complement and sometimes the auxiliaries of arithmetic. 390 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. Moreover, it is not without protest that the innovation has been sanctioned by our school legislation. Swiss teachers formally declare that ' ' geometry proper shoukl not have a place in the programme of a common school." But geometrv proper is not under discussion ; only the elements and applications of this science. 417. Purpose of Instruction in Geometry. — In the common school, in the three courses, the purpose of instruc- tion in geometry should l)e exclusively practical. The aim is to make the following items of knowledge available : 1 . A comprehension of the metric system ; 2. The measurement of surfaces and volumes required by the needs of life ; 3. A knowledge of the simplest operations of surveying and lev- eling. 418. Method to be Pursued. — For geometry, as for the other sciences, there is a necessary initiation, an intuitive preparation. It is especially in the infant school that it is expedient to communicate the primary notions of geometry in a concrete form. The official programme recommends, for the infant class, a selection from Froebel's "occupa- tions," shunning technical terms, definitions, and excess of detail in the analysis of geometrical forms. What must be avoided above all things, at the beginning, is the abuse of technical terms and abstract definitions, which the child repeats like a parrot, without understanding them. M. Leyssenne advises that with little children we wholly renounce tiie use of the terms sphere, circle, etc., and that we speak to them only ^>f balls and round bodies. Without going to this extreme, for it seems to us necessary to accustom the child as soon as possible to the special vocabulai-y of each scieuce, we think that at least the tech- nical term should be used only in tlie presence of a material object which may furnish the mind with a sensible represen- THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 391 tation of it. Do not begin by showing to the child ideal forms drawn on the blackboard. Show him real things, figures and solids, whose parts and properties he must be made to observe. Says M. Leyssenne : " We should take solids in wood, clay, or card-board, and place them in the children's hands ; then, when they have thoroughly seen them, touched them, and turned them in all directions, they should be told that this is a line, this an angle, this a square, this a circle, etc. ; and finally, they nmst draw that line, angle, square, and circle, upon the board. " 419. Elementary Course. — In the elementary course hardly more will be done than to continue these exercises which are the alphabet of geometry, and teach the child to um'avel that science. To these there will be added exer- cises in the measurement and comparison of magnitudes by simple judgments of the eye ; the child will be taught to estimate distances approximately ; and these will be ex- pressed in terms of the metric system. The difficulty in making these estimates will be seen when they depend on the senses alone. " A stock of geometrical conceptions having been obtained," says Mr. Spencer, " a further step may in course of time be taken by introducing the practice of testing the correctness of all figures drawn by the eye. . . There can be little doubt that geometry had its origin in the methods discovered by artisans and others, of making accurate measui'ement for the foundations of buildings, areas of inclosures, and the like. . . Geometrical truths should be introduced to the pupil under analogous circumstances. In the cutting out of pieces for his card-houses, in the drawing of orna- mental diagrams for coloring, and in those various instructive oc- cupations which an inventive teacher will lead him into, he may be for a length of time advantageously left, like the primitive builder, to tentative processes ; and he will so gain an abundant 392 PKACTIGAL PEDAGOGY. experience of the difficulty of achieving his aims by tlie unaided senses.! In the intermediate and higher course the instruction in geometr}' ought to be more exact, more didactic. Intuitive methods should give place to processes purely abstract, in which reasoning should play the important part. 420. Intuitive Geometry. — There is now such a craze for intuitive processes that the attempt has been made to apply them, not only to the elements of geometry, when they are in place, but to the whole subject. This is the system known as tachymetry^ or rapid measurement, a sort of intui- tive geometry. This system may be illustrated as follows : By means of contrivances made of card-board or of wood, there is made an actual decomposition of the different volumes which are to be estimated ; then the parts so decomposed are grouped in different ways, so that the theorem, which would otherwise be demonstrated Mi abstracto by a long train of reasoning, is made intuitive and tangible. This method of physical and concrete demonstration is applied even to the measurement of the circle and the sphere, even to the properties of the square of the hypotheuuse and of similar triangles. In a word, tachymetry is materialized geometry. " The aim of tachymetry, " says one writer, " is eminently prac- tical, — to teach the farmer to compute how many hectolitres of wheat there are in a pile of wheat in his barn ; the road-master how many cubic metres, decimetres, and centimetres in a heap of stones ; the civil engineer how to proceed in forming an estimate of the work he is to perform." ^ 1 Spencer, op. cit, p. 148. 2 This empirical geometry is all very well for such cases as those mentioned above ; but it should be recollected that no system of mere measurements can ever prove that the sum of the three angles of a triangle is equal to two right angles. (P.) , THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 393 421. Are there Object-lessons in Arithmetic and Ge- ometry ? — We do not think that there can be real object- lessons either in arithmetic or in geometry. We should note the fact that when we give the child sticks in order to teach him to count or solids in order to teach him to estimttte dimensions, it is not the things themselves, the sticks or the solids, that we wish him to study ; but we place these objects before his eyes or in his hands, in order that he may as soon as possible disengage, from these concrete realities the abstract idea of numbers, the abstract idea of geomet- rical forms. 422. The Physical and Natural Sciences. — In inti'o- ducing the physical and the natural sciences into the common school, the purpose has been both to give the child a certain amount of positive knowledge, of an infinite value for practi- cal life, and to teach him the ha])it of observation. While the mathematical sciences are especially valuable for devel- oping inward attention and power of reasoning, the natural and the physical sciences call the senses into play and teach the habit of seeing, and of seeing completely. Now, as some one has said, " the spirit of observation is the best of professors." The child who is endowed with it learns for himself a multitude of things which forever escape minds that are indifferent and incapable of observing. Every specialist is disposed to exaggerate the importance of the specialty which he teaches. We are not astonished, then, that Paul Bert attributes to the physical and natural sciences a part absolutely preponderant in primary instruc- tion. But we must allow that no study is better adapted for teaching to see accurately, to take nothing on authority, and to divest the mind of superstitions and prejudices. 423. Programmes and Methods. — The French official programme purposely insists on the very elementary char- 394 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. acter of the instruction given in the physical and natural sciences in the common school. It recommends object-lessons for the first course, — les- sons, moreover, graduated according to a regular plan, bearing on man, animals, vegetables, minerals. These objects will be shown to children, and the teacher will add to these some simple and familiar explanations. Physics appears only with the intermediate courses, and provides for only summary notions on the three states of matter, upon air, water, and coml)ustion. Simple experi- mental demonstration will complete the lesson. On the other hand, in the intermediate course, didactic lessons will be given on man, animals, and vegetables. It is evident that this course ought to be as descriptive as possible. Chemistry is introduced in the higher course under this description : The notion of simple bodies^ compound bodies, metals^ and common salts. Physics is studied in its essential laws, — weight, heat, light, electricity, etc. Instruments are described and ex- plained. Finally, in this same course, mineralogy is in turn added to the two other natural sciences, botany and zoology, the study of which is continued. At the same time that human physiology is taught, the principal functions of the human body are explained. 424. Necessity of a Book. — The physical and natural sciences cannot be taught without apparatus, iustrumeuts, and museums. Now it nmst not be forgotten that for the most part the common scliools are destitute of scientific instruments and natural history collections. The book is then indispensable, a book that is well written, which requires but inexpensive experiments, — an elementary book, and not merely an abridgment. THE TEACHING OF THE SCIENCES. 395 " To select in each science, " says Paul Bert, " the dominant, fundamental facts ; to set them forth with sufficient details to make them clearly apparent to the child's mind and to fix them firmly in his memory ; to neglect facts of secondary importance ; — such are the general rules that should be followed. " 425. Practical Character of this Instruction. — In the teaching of the physical and natural sciences, particular care should be taken to avoid all fine-spun theories, and everything which cannot be made really intelligible to the child. Special attention will also be given to the practical application wliich may be made of the different parts of these sciences. The official programme enjoins this course upon teachers when it requires them to dwell upon " the transformation of crude material into the manufactured articles of every-day use," and again when it offers prac- tical suggestions on hygiene and upon the effects of tobacco and alcohol. Doubtless the first result of scientific instruction is mental development. These studies open the intelligence, extend the intellectual horizon, and train men. " A training in the natural sciences must be raised to the dignity of a regular educational appliance ; and for this purpose the quan- tity must be reduced; but what is learned must be perfectly assim- ilated, and must be iised, not to increase the volume of what is known, but to establish habits of attentive observation, of exact analysis, and of a fruitful and well-regulated curiosity. " But the material results of this instruction are no less valuable. The sciences of nature appear to us particularly useful and commendable, because they are a necessary intro- duction to professional instruction, and are a preparation for the arts and the trades. 426. Scientific Excursions. — Nothing is more helpful 396 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. to the teaching of the physical and natural sciences than scientific excursions, whether tiiey t>e directed to the fields, woods, and farms, or to some shop or manufactory. But it must not be forgotten that these excursions ought to preserve their character of recreation and diversion. The instruction that is given in them should take place in the presence of pupils in the form of familiar conversations, and the in- structor should not carry outside of the class-room the habits and the didactic method of the school. CHAPTER VIIL MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. - 427. Moral Education and the Teaching of Morals. — In 1881 some of the inspectors-general complained that " at present moral education is not included in the pro- gramme of common-school instruction." It will never be included in it ; for though it is the principal and the essen- tial purpose of instruction, it is not a part of the programme. Moral education is a general and delicate subject which can- not be imprisoned within the limits of a regular course of technical instruction. It is otherwise with morals itself, which ought to be separately taught as a science, and the highest of all the sciences. Doubtless a course in morals, however well it ma}' be taught, will not suffice to make a good man ; but it will aid in doing this, and it is with reason that the legislation of 1882, in imitation of what was done abroad, gave to morals a place in the programme of the common schools. 428. Morals mat be Taught in every School Exer- cise. — Instead of being the definite object of a regular course, taught at certain hours, the teaching of morals ought to be the constant care of the teacher and the natural result of all the exercises of the school. Says M. Janet : " There is a capital mode of moral instruction which pervades the whole course of teaching, all the studies of the child, and even all the acts of his life. We may teach morals through reading, writing, grammar, history, and even through the 397 398 PRACTICAL TEDAGOGY. sciences. Children will be taught to read in good books contain- ing short moral lessons; they will be made to write, as models, maxims and sentences which will remain in their memory ; dictation exercises may be given them borrowed from the records of the moralists ; and history at each step is a school of morals. Even arithmetic may be used for this purpose ; for from the rule of interest, for example, this practical inference may be drawn, that no debts should be contracted, or if they are they must be paid. There is a lesson in morals in the acts of the child at all hours of the day, even in his sports and recreations. At each moment the instructor is obliged to teach neatness, politeness, obedience, industry, and the spirit of peace and concord. From this first point of view the school as a whole is in itself a school of moral instruction." 429. The Special Teaching of Morals. — But outside of this diffused and almost unconscious teaching of morals, which results from all the exercises of the school, there ought to be a regular course of instruction in morals, very simple, of course, and very modest, but distinct from all the others. Morals is a science which may and should be taught on its own account, in the common school as every- where else. It is only by this means that there will be a cure for what is irregular, indefinite, and insufficient in moral education, when it is supported merely on indirect lessons and a disconnected instruction. On this question there may be differences of opinion among men of good judgment. M. Buisson, in his Raj)port sur r exposition de Philadelphie, declared that morals differs from the other topics of the programme in the fact that it cannot have a fixed time in the scheme of daily exercises. The official programmes of 1881 have, as it seems to us, rightly come to a different conclusion, for they say ex- pressly : " There shall be each day, in the two lower grades, at least one lesson which, in the form of a fainilar conversation or by means of MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. 399 appropriate reading lessons, shall l)e devoted to moral instruction ; in the higher grade this lesson shall be, as far as possible, the methodical development of a systematic course in morals." 430. Topics of Moral Instruction. — The object of instruction in morals in the common school is the practical knowledge of duties much more than the theoreticnl expres- sion of moral principles. Tt is of less importance to have the child reason as a philosopher on the nature of his actions, than to prepare him to fulfil as an uprigiit man all the obligations of life. " It should be the duty of all teachers," says M. Janet, " to in- struct their pupils during the whole school course in their duties towards their family, their country, their fellows, themselves, and God." Learned discussions on good and evil, on tlie character of the moral law, on the principle of moral obligation, ought to be nearly proscribed in elementary instruction in morals. These things are proper in a college course, but it would be useless to require them of children in the common school, whose minds are insufficiently prepared for such studies. 431. Scope and Limits of this Instruction. — The teaching of morals in the common school ought not to be connected with any religious doctrine. Universal and com- mon to all children, to whatever confession they may belong, it speaks but the language of reason and common sense ; it remains human, and does not encroach on the peculiar beliefs of any religious body. " Lay instruction in morals is distinguished from religious in- struction without contradicting it. The instructor substitutes himself neither for the priest nor for the head of the family; he unites his efforts with theirs in order to make of each child an honest man. He ought to insist on the duties which bring men 400 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY, togetlier, and not on the dogmas which divide them. Every theo- logical and philosophical discnssion is manifestly forliidden liim by the very character of his functions, by the age of his pupils, and by the confidence of families and of the state ; he concen- trates all his energies on a problem of another nature, but not less arduous, for the very reason that it is exclusivelv' practical ; and this is to make all children serve an actual apprenticeship in right-living. " Later, when tliey have become citizens, they will perhaps be separated by dogmatic opinions, but at least they will be in prac- tical accord in placing the aim of life as high as possible ; in having the same horror of whatever is low and vile, the same admiration for w^hatever is noble and generous, the same delicacy in the appreciation of duties ; in aspiring after moral perfection, whatever efforts it may cost ; and in feeling themselves united in the general homage of the true, the beautiful, and the good, which is also a form, and none the less pixre, of the religious feeling." ^ 432. Division of the Couksks. — In the teaching of morals, more perhaps than in any other subject, it is neces- sary to follow a progressive plan, to proceed at first by ex- amples, by familiar talks, to rise little by little to abstract laws and to general rules. It is in accordance with these principles that the official programme has organized the different courses in the com- mon school. In the infant class the instruction comprises only simple talks mingled with the various exercises of the school, short poems learned by heart, and stories told by the teachers. In the three grades of the common school, the programme regulates the succession of topics as follows : Elementary Course. — Familiar conversations; readings with explanations, narratives, examples, precepts ; learning by heart. Intermediate Course. — Readings with explanations as before '■ Programme of 1882, Education morale. MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. 401 (narratives, examples, precepts), but co-ordinated and graduated according to a methodical plan. Higher Couuse. — Short graduated lessons in moral instruc- tion, illustrated by examples in accordance with the programme. It is then only in the highei- course that the instruction will assume a didactic, doctrinal form, and that the teacher will give formal lessons. 133. The Inductive and Deductive Method. — In whatever waj' we may teach morals, the method followed is always either inductive or deductive. We may start from an example, from a fact furnished by history, from a fiction invented by the teacher's imagintition, from an experience of the child, from an incident which has occurred in the class, in the school, or in the village, and then lead the pupil to discover the moral truth concealed behind this particular event. This is to proceed induc- tively. Or we may lay down a moral rule, the definition of a virtue or a precept of conduct, and after having explained it in itself, we may help the pupil to find practical applications of this general rule. In other terms, we may proceed de- ductively. " At one time," says M. Janet, " maxims will be regarded as the consequence of a story or a fable ; and at another they will be pre- sented as principles, and the story or the fable will become the proof or the application of the maxim." 434. Proper Characteristics of Instruction in Morals. — The clearness, logic, and intellectual qualities which may assure the efficiency of every other topic, will no'i suffice in the teaching of morals. In this case the teacher is an edu- cator rather thnu a professor. Hp does not address hmiself alone to the mind, — he must touch the heart, penetrate the 402 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. conscience, and insinuate himself into the depths of the soul. He has need of gravity, and also of fervor and communi- cative emotion ; he himself ought to feel vividly the moral trutlis which he communicates to others. " In order that moral culture may be possible and effective, it is an indispensable condition that this instruction touch the soul to the quick ; that it shall be confounded witli an ordinary lesson neither in tone, character, nor form. It is not sufficient to give the pupil correct notions and store his memory with wise maxims ; but we must succeed in developing within him emotions so true and so strong as to aid him in the day of trial in triumphing over passions and vices. It is reqiiii'ed of the teacher, not to adorn the memory of the child, but to touch his heart and to make him feel, by a direct experience, the majesty of the moral law. This is equivalent to saying that the means to be employed cannot be like those which are proper in a lesson in science or grammar. They ought to be not only more versatile and varied, but more intimate, more aifecting, more practical, of a character less didactic on the whole, but more serious." 435. Teaching through thk Heart. — We have been sharply criticised for having said, in our Elements d'instrvc- tion cinque et morale, that " the practice of morals is l)ased on the sensibilities." But yet this is the simple truth. Feel- ing, whether it be the feeling of affection for one's family, one's companion, one's fellow-citizen, or even religious sen- timent, that noble emotion of the soul for the good, — these are the most fruitful sources of virtue. On this point edu- cators are unanimous. " With the child," says M. Marion, " the heart anticipates the head, and it is rather through the heart than through the reason that we have our hold on him. It is then to the heart that we must first address ourselves. The sensibilities of the child are already very active at a time when Ids intelligence is yet scarcely awakened. It would then be a waste of time to teach him general MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. 403 precepts, but to the same degree it would be a useful undertaking to devote our energies to touching his heart, to giving him a love and, so to speak, an agitation for the good, a longing for what is better." " From the hearthstone of the tender and generous emotions," says Madame de Saussure, " there radiates over the intelligence a kind of animation, that gentle ardor with which it is intimately penetrated. . . . The feelings are not only necessary to the mind as a complement to its knowledge, but they decide its very char- acter, its nature, and the mode of its action." ^ 436. Education through Reflection. — Convinced as we are of the prerogatives of the heart and the emotions in the matter of moral culture, we have not the least thought of depreciating the influence of the intelligence itself in moral education. Virtue is an affair of judgment as well as of feeling. We must first know where duty lies. To know accurately in what it consists, what reasons constrain us to follow it, what consequences will result from it, is not with- out use in deciding us to fulfil it. The teacher will then appeal to the child's judgment and reflection. "In the intermediate course," says M.Janet, "we ought to address ourselves to the reflection, if not more, at least as much, as to the feelings." "The instructor," says M. Marion, "ought to give the child general modes of thinking, general rules for forming sound judg- ments, and a larger sense of his own responsibility. If we would have the child accustom himself to do nothing without asking himself what is good or bad in the given case, we nmst evidently furnish him with general precepts as to good and evil, and give him true moral instruction.'"^ 437. Education through Practice. — When we have assigned the mind and the heart their respective parts in the 1 L' Education progressive, I , p. 217. 2 Marion, op. cit., p. 392. 404 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. teaching of morals, wc must hasten to recognize the function of habit and will. It is of pre-eminent importance that h\ his vigilant endeavor the teacher assure to every moment of school life the accomplishment of acts in conformity with the moral law. The intelligent application of school disci- pline will furnish him the means for doing this. He will allow liberty of thought and action, but will indicate to his pupils their errors or their mistakes. He will teach them a horror for tale-bearing, dissimulation, and hypocrisy. He will place above everything else frankness and uprightness, and for tliis purpose he will never discourage the frank speech of children, their objections or their questions. " The teacher ought to give the child habits. ... At the age of seven the child has not yet all the good habits which he ought to have, and even those which he has are not as strong as they ought to become. We must continue to train him to what is good by inspiring him without his knowledge, so to speak, with correct modes of acting and feeling. General precepts would be useless at that age ; they are repulsive and dry because they are abstract and remain without effect. Let us recall the remark of Herbert Spencer, " that it is not only with children, but with all inatten- tive and slightly cultured minds, that admonitions fail of their purpose." " We do not teach a child morals in order that he may know but in order that he may do. In the ordinary sense of the terin. it is not a question of teaching but of inculcating, which is an en- tirely different thing. In introducing morals into the programme of the common schools, it was not intended to introduce a new branch of instruction analogous to the others, new lessons parallel with the other lessons ; but it is tlie education of the heart and of the cliaracter that it is proposed to assure and direct in tlie best manner possible." 438. Practical Exercises. — This necessity of appealing to the moral habits is so evident that the authors of the official programme have taken special pains to recommen*,' MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. 405 practical exercises which tend to embody moral principles in action, both within the school and outside the school. An attentive supervision is thus imposed on teachers.^ These practical exercises ought first to take account of individual characteristics. The teacher ouglit to know the peculiar disposition of each pupil for the purpose of inter- vening to correct their faults and to call into play their good qualities. To a far higher degree than intellectual educa- tion, moral education requires the particular, personal care which aims at eacli natural bent of the child. The teacher must also endeavor to correct the bad habits, the prejudices, and the superstitions which the child brings from the family into the school, upon which he has been nourished from infancy, and which the influences of the environment in which he lives continue to perpetuate in him. " The cliild does not reach the age of seven absolutely inexperi- enced and morally unaffected. A sort of moral perversion has already begun in him through default of proper care, and the teacher who receives him into school ought not only to do what has not been done, but more often to undo what alone has been done." 439. The Example op a Teacher. — But it is not alone the child with his habits already formed, with his prejudices contracted from birth, that must be supervised in his acts and trained to think better and to do better ; but, above all, the teacher ought to supervise himself. "In order that the pupil may be penetrated with that respect for the moral law which is a complete education in itself, the first 1 "In some schools the chikh'en are polite and respectful to every- body, and they are early inspired with the sentiment of duty ; but this is far from being true in most schools. Teachers do not supervise their pupils enough outside of school ; they do not apply themselves sufficiently to training the hearts of children, and too often forget that instruction is nothing without cducaUoii." 406 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. thing necessary is that by his character, his conduct, and his language, the teacher himself should be the most persuasive of examples. In this order of instruction, what does not come from the heart does not go to the heart. The teacher who recites precepts and speaks of duty without conviction and emotion, does much worse than lose his effort ; he is guilty of a fault." It is not only when he speaks of morals, it is always and everywhere that the teacher ought to present himself to the child as a living example of uprightness and honesty. A real model acting before the eyes of the child will always be more efficient than the models borrowed from history or fiction. 440. Incidental Marks. — It is doubtless necessary in the teaching of morals not so much to preach as to do ; but yet exhortations made with gravity are not without their value. M. Pecaut wisely recommends the managers of schools to call together, at least each week, the pupils of the lower classes for the purpose of conversing with them for half an hour. " Let them then enter into more direct communication with them ; let them pass in review the history of the past week, doing justice to all; and let them point out, along with the faults and shortcomings, the honest efforts and good results. Let them re- serve for this conference some interesting article, adapted to raise the children above the ordinary level of their studies, and to inspire them with a taste to read for themselves some good books from the school library. For this purpose let them give their pinpils discreet advice as to their ordinary life, their family duties, and books that are to be avoided. Such conversations well ]irepared, serious without stiffness, in which a skillful manager would never fail to associate his subordinates, might be made the principal educative lesson, a cordial, interesting, and undogmatic moral lesson. The child would leave the school better prepared to profit MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. 407 by the good influences of the family, and better armed against the bad examples and the unwholesome excitements of the street." 441. Reading. — It is particularly by reading that good moral inspirations are to be insinuated into the head and into the heart of the child. This reading is either done in class, with commentaries which throw into relief the impor- tant parts of -the text, or is done personally by the pupil. " School libraries," say the Rapports of the inspectors-general, " when they are well maintained, will furnish the teacher powerful aids in education and moral instruction. The influence of good books is very important, and so their influence should be extended everywhere in oi'der to develop, by this means, a high state of moral sentiment." 442. Poetry. — We have noted in another place the rela- tions between the beautiful and the good, between art and morals. In our schools we haA^e not yet learned to draw from literary studies all the advantage which education is entitled to expect from them. " If the moral and religious sense consists above all in respect- ful homage and submission rendered to what is better than one's self, to the ideal, to the good, and finally to the perfect Being, what is more proper for awakening it than to make an appeal to the sense of admiration for what is beautiful, — beautiful in thought, sentiment, form, and order; for everything which, by surpassing our low level, solicits us to step out of ourselves and to mount higher ? Let us recognize a great want here, which I will only indicate. The official, dogmatic religion has retired from our schools, and nothing has yet come to take its place ; moral instruction has no more than appeared on the threshold; and art in its various forms, but particularly in the eminently educative form of poetry, does not fulfill in any degree its office of high culture. Even choral singing, which has always been the chosen instrument of religious, moral, and patriotic education, nowhere exists, so to speak, iu our schools." 408 PEACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 443. Theoretical Morals. — While the teaching of morals in the common school has mainly a practical aim, the instructor need not negkct to give to his lessons an ele- vated general character. It d<;es not suffice to teach pupils their individual duties, and put them in a condition to prac- tice them ; but it is necessary that the course in morals be also an occasion to awaken the reflection of the child on the nature of man and on his destination in the world. " The last course," says M. Janet, " will not be finished without having given the children some notions of what we call theoretical morals, — that is, the explanation of tlie principles of morals, the distinction between good and evil, duty as distinct froni personal interest, conscience and the moral sense, merit and demerit, moral sanction and the future life founded on the justice of God." In other terms, the teacher has not only to favor the par- ticular dispositions which will prepare the child for. the accomplishment of such or such a duty ; but he ought to aim higher and by all possible means, by the strict application of rules, by the judicious use of rewards and punishments, by exhortations and reprimands, and on occasion by theoretical explanations, he will do his best to develop in the soul of his pupil that which is the basis of all morals, the feeling of personal responsibility. 444. Civic Instruction. — Recently introduced into the programmes of primary instruction, civic instruction might in a sense be confounded with morals, of which it is but the complement. It is impossible, in fact, to become a citizen if one does not begin by being a man. The firmest basis of the civic virtues will always be the practice of the individual and social vu'tues. It is with reason, however, that a special place has been given to civic instruction, were it only to bring into clearer MORALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION, 409 view its importance and utility. But it is not proposed to give merely indirect instruction in civics, such as might result from history, geography, etc. ; but there is oppor- tunity to give direct instruction in all the topics included in this expression by connecting them with the courses in history and geography. 445. Necessity of Civic Instruction. — It is not enough to say that instruction in civics is useful ; the truth is that it is necessary. It is especially so since political liberty, that conquest of the Republic of 1848, has been added to civil liberty, that conquest of the Revolution. In a countr}^ which governs itself, where each individual through his vote participates freely in the direction of public affairs, why permit the majority of citizens, those who attend only the common school, to remain in ignorance of their political and social obligations ? You require them to respect and love the Constitution, and they do not know the Constitution ! You require them to exercise their rights and perform their duties, and they are ignorant of the meaning and the scope of these rights and duties ! Citizens who boast of this glorious name without knowing what obligation it imposes on them ; electors who vote with- out knowing the importance of their vote ; tax-payers who pay taxes without comprehending the use made of them ; inhabitants of a country who have not been taught to love her ; — such are necessarily the members of a people who have lacked instruction in civics. Doubtless the newspapers repair this ignorance in part, but there is no regularity and system in the teaching of the press ; it is subject to a thousand hazards. Moreover, all the newspapers are not what they should be ; and, finally, the newspaper often comes too late to heal the poUtical preju- 410 PRACTICAL TEDAGOGY. dices which have been left to take root in the soul of the child and the young mau. A distinguished writer, Vitet, said a few years ago, " Love of country is not taught in France." If this assertion is true, it is important that it cease to be so, and that the chil- dren of France learn to love not only their country, but also the institutions of their country, " Without civic and political education," wrote Pestalozzi, " the sovereign people is a child playing with fire at the risk eacii moment of burning down the house." In 1877 M. Grcard demanded the introduction into French schools of what abroad has long been called civic instruc- tion. " What good sense demands," he said, " is that to the respect for the national traditions which is the basis of enlightened patri- otism, there be joined in the minds of children who have reached the age of reason, a knowledge of the general laws in common use in their country. What our pupils know the least, is that which for themselves and for everybody they should have the most in- terest in knowing. It is surely not without use for them to have an idea of the capitularies of Charlemagne; but how much more important it is tliat they shall not be left in ignorance of the prin- ciples of the social organization in the midst of which they are called to fulfill their duties as citizens! Doubtless the child sliould not be an absolute stranger to the regime of our ancient provinces ; but is it not still more indispensable that he have an exact notion of all that actually constitutes the organic life of a commune, of a department, of the state ? How many pupils there are who might explain in a fashion what in their day the Mayors of the Palace were, who would be greatly embarrassed to define the function and the prerogatives of the mayor of their arrondisse- ment or of their village! And if these notions are not taught them at school, as they might be, and as they are in all the coun- tries about us, where and how shall they be learned?" ^ 1 M. Gre'ard, L' Enseignement priinaire a Paris de 1867 a 1877, p. 281. MOEALS AND CIVIC INSTEUCTION. 411 446. Method to be Pursued. — There is nothing dryer or more monotonous than a course of instruction in civics, if the teacher does nothing more than enumerate to the child the administrative and political notions of which it is composed. But it is easy, if one takes the trouble, to ani- mate and vivify this instruction by citing examples, by availing one's self of history, and above all by aiming to excite without cessation national ideas and to enkindle the flame of patriotism. The purpose of civic instruction, in fact, is not only to introduce into the mind of the child a certain amount of positive knowledge ; but it is, above all, to cultivate in his soul at an early hour his natural inclination to love his country and to respect her laws. The official programme indicates the course to be pur- sued, which consists, as in geography, in taking the com- mune as the starting-point, and thence passing progres- sively to the study of the department and the state. Famil- iarized at first with the institutions which are, so to speak, within his reach, and which he sees in operation in his vil- lage, the child will have no difficulty in rising higher, and will be wholly prepared to conceive the more complicated play of the government itself. But all this on the condition that the teacher knows how to avoid dryness, that he does not multiply useless details, that he excites the child's curi- osity, that he appeals to his patriotic feelings, that he always shows him what advantage he will derive in life from the knowledge which he acquires at school, and how much he needs to know all that can be taught him on this point, in order to fulfill later his duties as a citizen and to exercise a citizen's rights. 447. Civic Instruction and History. — History, which teaches us the past of our country, is one thing, and civic 412 PUACTICAL ]'EL).U;UL. k. iustniction, which intikcs known to us its i)resi;nt state, its iictuul orgiuiization, is quite aiiolhei'. However, we must never separate ''to-day" and " foruK-ily " ; and eivie in- struction will not be fruitl'ul unless it is ever stinuilating a comparison between contemporary institutions and ancient institutions. Of course a large s|)irit of toleration, and even of respect, should animate the instructor in the comparisons which he will have to make between tlii! past and the present. In praising tlie actual state of affairs, he should have a fear lest he unduly undervalue and misrepresent wliat now is no more. This has been elo(|uently said by Jules Ferry : " T do not like to have it said to children, * There is nothing but contemporary history.' Ah I it was doubtless a liappy thought and a real step in advance to introduce contempoi'ary history into the prograiiinies of our elementary instruction ; but let us be on our guard against an opposite extreme. Do not think it wise to say to youth, ' Back of 1789, back of that brilliant and renovating date, there is nothing, nothing but sadness, nothing but misery, nothing but shame.' In the first place this is not true, and then such talk is not wholesome for youth." * 4 18. Civic Instijuotion and Politics. — By reason of its relations with politics, civic instruction falls upon rocks where it is easy to make shipwreck. The instructoi- should be on his guard against making of his pupils little journal- ists and embryo politicians, Avithout forgetting, however, what he owes his country and the respect which is due to the established government. As some one has said, we ought not to carry politics into the school, "if we mean by politics what occurs day after day in the Chand)crs, who is the Minister to-day, and who will be the Minister to-morrow." ^ Discours au Se'nat, du 10 Juin, 1882. MOKALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION, 413 But if WO un(,l(!r8tanfl by politics a knowledge of the great principles of liberty, of equality, and of fraternal solidarity, which are the foundation of modern societies, and wlii(;h tli(; sons of the Revolution had to defend against the laggards and against the impatient ; if we understand by politics love of country and attachment to the Republic, we say yes, and believe that it is never too soon to inculcate the idea of it, and that this sort of politics is fit for all periods of life. The law of March 22, 1882, put moral and civic instruc- tion among the obligatory topics of instruction in the pri- mary schools for boys and girls. Hereafter moral and civic instruction will take among the required studies, between grammar and arithmetic, the place which it has the right to claim as a valuable instrument for popular education and as a branch of instruction particularly necessary in a land of universal suffrage, in a great democracy which it would be of no use to emancipate if it were not at the same time enlightened as to its rights and its duties. 449. Lay Rights in thf: Matter of Moral Education. — The work of the teacher is not done when he has culti- vated and adorned the minds of his pupils, and has fur- nished them with technical knowledge for the combats of life. He derives from his title as teacher, he has received from the confidence of families, a still higher office. By virtue of his office and according to his position, he is the educator of the rising generation. It would certainly be easier, supposing this were possible, to confine himself stiictly to his professional duties, to be simply a teacher of French, history, or matheniatics ; to go no deeper than the surface of the mind ; not to t<^>uch the living and inner reality of beliefs, and in a word, as some one has said, "to be nothing but a sort of dancing-mastf-r of the intelligence." 414 PKACTICAL PEDAGOGY. But whether he will oi- uot, by the very nature of his duties, by his ceaseless influence on the souls of the chil- dren confided to bis caie, tlie teacher necessarily assumes a higher responsibility- He intervenes not only tlu-ough direct moral lessons, but through the spirit which pro- ceeds from all his instruction, and still more through his example, in the moral training of his pupils ; and I do not hesitate to say that this is his duty and his right. Yes, we boldly claim for lay teachers the title of educa- tors and moralists. In order to perform this august part, it is not necessary to wear the robes of a priest. It is suffi- cient to b© a man, an upright man. By wliat right, some one will say, do you teach morals? By the right which every good man has, who is at the same time a teacher, to communicate to his pupils that which is his most precious treasure, — moral truth, the most essential and most important of all. Do I need to say that this task, if it is the most noble, is also the most delicate? It is espe- cially on this point that the intentions of the University are misunderstood and its work suspected. We are treated as U8uri)ers and as the enemies of religion ; and, in the lan- guage of certain political partisans, " the common school became a godless scliool on the day when the teaching of morals was officially introduced into it." We would have deserved these reproaches if we had for a single moment forgtjtteu what respect and regard we owe to the religious consciousness and the confessional belief of our pupils ; but it must be evident to every candid man that in undertaking to teacli human morals, the eternal moi'al law, we do not purpose in any way to trespass on tlie riglits of parents or of the ministers of religion. Though we are the sincere and ardent defenders of the. rights of modern so- ciety, we are none the less conscious of tiie respect which a government worthy of the name owes to the consciences of MOKALS AND CIVIC INSTRUCTION. 415 religious men. What is more worthy of our respect than the conscience of a child, a nascent and as yet undeveloped conscience, an easy prey to all doctrines, which offers itself to our instruction with the ingenuous docility of early years, and which would so easily allow itself to be fashioned in the mold where it might please us to put it? But this con- science, God forbids us to touch it and to take it in hand, not only because this child's conscience is the whole future of the man and has its individual rights, but also because back of it, if we were guilty enough to wish to turn it aside from its natural aspirations, we would perceive the will of the parents, the rights of the family, and the whole inherit- ance of traditional beliefs. If there is still any one who imagines that in giving moral and civic instruction to all grades of public education, we have desired to raise altar against altar, to oppose the teacher to the priest or to the pastor, to estalilish some com- petition between the manual and the catechism, that we have desired by the side of each temple or each church to estab- lish a school of irreligion and impiety, so that the child on leaving the primary school passes before the doors of the church or the temple with the spirit of indifference or of scoffing, he is mistaken ; and we protest against these impu- tations with all the power of our conscience as a man, a patriot, and a republican. Our only thought has been that, at a time when we are concerned with what is of vital interest to a great nation, — I mean the moralization of the people, — it is not expecting too much of the good-will and devotion of all, that moral lessons should not lose all their efficacy for not being clothed with an ecclesiastical character ; but that lay teach- ers might participate in this instruction. And when we have thus assumed our part of the common task, instead of being cursed as adversaries, perhaps it may be more just to give us thanks as co-laborers. 416 rRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. We shall not lose heart. We shall continue to invite all the pupils of our colleges and schools to the neutral ground of instruction in morals, where we attack no religion, where we preach justice, charity, and tolerance, which is charity towards ideas. We shall continue to build upon these solid foundations the human city, while leaving to the ministers of religion the task of building by the side of it what vSt. Augustine called the City of God.^ 1 The public school system of France, taken collectively, and including all the grades of instruction, is known as the " University of France," and is under the direction of the Minister of Public Instruc- tion. The significance of paragraph 449 lies in the fact that the schools of France have been secularized, — that is, taken wholly from the hands of ecclesiastics and administered by laymen. The clnu'ch is naturally aggrieved at this, claims the teaching of morals as one of its prerogatives, and pronounces the state schools godless. ( P.) CHAPTEE IX. DRAWING. — MUSIC. — SINGING. 450. Drawing in the Common .School. — Drawing has long been considered as an accomplisliment, as a fancy study reserved to people of leisure or to professional artists. It has resulted from this that drawing has for a long time been omitted from the programme of common school in- sttuction. But it has now gained the day. For several yours past the teaciiing of drawing has been obligatory in most of the schools of Europe. As some one has said, " there is an advent of drawing, as well as of science, in edu- cation." It is acknowledged on all sides that drawing is not only an elevated recreation and a preparation for an appreciation of the beautifid, but it is also the prime con- dition of all progress in the different branches of artistic industry. " Without drawing, no skillful workmen, no good superintend- ents of manufactories, no proiJiess and excellence in the hi^liest industries, those which give proof of civilization." ^ " Tlie advantages which can be derived from drawing, through its happy applications to the mechanic arts, are infinitely valuable. It is the soul of several branches of conmierce ; it is drawing which gives the preference to the industries of a nation ; it in- creases the value of crude material a hundred-fold. Clotlis, jewelry, trinkets, porcelain, carpets, — all the trades relating to the arts cannot be carried on, except through the principles of drawing." ^ 1 See the article Dessix in the DicHonnaire de i^e'dagotjie. 2 Bachelier, Discours sur Vutilitc des e'coles eUmentaires. 417 418 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 451. Historical: Rousseau. — Rousseau was tlie first in France to recouimeud the study of drawing, — drawing from nature, moreover, witli the intention of making skillful workmen rather than elegant artists. " We could not learn to judge correctly of the width and height of objects except by learning to know also their shapes, and even to copy them ; for at bottom this copying is absolutely dependent on the laws of perspective ; and we cannot estimate the size from these appearances except we have some perception of these laws. Children, who are great inntators, all try their hand at drawing. I would have my child cultivate this art, not especially for the art itself, but in order to make his eye true and his hand dextrous ; and in general it is of very little consequence that he understand such or such an exercise, provided he acquire the perspicacity of sense and Mie correct habit of body that are generally acquired through that exercise. I would be very loth, therefore, to give him a drawing-master lolio should (jive Mm only imitations to imitate, and who should makt Mm draw only after drawings; I would have him have no teacher but nature, and no other models but objects. I would have before his eyes the very original, and not the paper which represents it ; and I would have him sketch a house from a house, a tree from a tree, a man from a man, in order that he may accustom himself to observe bodies and their appearances cor- rectly, and not to accept false and conventional imitations for real imitations. T would even discourage him from tracing anything from memory, in the absence of objects, until by frequent obser- vations their exact shapes are firndy imiiressed on his imagina- tion ; for fear that by substituting odd and fantastic figures for the actual things, he lose all knowledge of proportion and a taste for the beauties of nature. "I very well know that in this way he will scrawl for a long time without making anything that is recognizable, and that he will be late in acquiring elegance of contour and the light touch of draftsmen, and perhaps never the appreciation of picturesque effects and fine taste in drawing; but on the other hand he will certainly acquire a truer vision, a steadier hand, a knowledge of the real similarities of size and shape among animals, plants, and DRAWING. — MUSIC. — SINGING. 419 natural bodies, and a more ready acquaintance with the shifting of persi^ective." ^ Rousseau is wrong in absolute!}' proscribing the imitation of artificial models. Another error is tliat he very sharply separates drawing from geometry. "■ Geometry," he sa^'s, " is for our i)upils but the art of making a good use of the rule and compass ; and it must not be confounded with drawing, which will employ neither of these instruments." 452. Pestalozzi and Froebel. — After Rousseau, Pesta- lozzi and Froebel are the ones who have done the most to popularize elementary instruction in drawing. For Pestalozzi, geometrical forms constitute the very essence of draAving. The pupil will first draw straight lines, squares, triangles, and arcs of the circle. Later, when the jesthetic element of form is separated from the purely mathematical element, and the pupil has gained a clear consciousness of it. exercises in linear drawing will be followed l)y lessons in perspective and in artistic drawing. The drawing of lines is but a preparation for the drawing of objects. " It is not lines," he says, " that nature gives the child ; she gives him only objects ; and we should give him lines only to aid him in seeing objti ts correctly, and we should guard against removing the objects from him and making him see only lines." Pestalozzi did hardly more than la}^ down principles ; Froebel has applied them. Like Pestalozzi, he takes geo- metrical figures as the starting-point. " From the start the child has before him a table divided into squares, and then a slate divided into squares. Balls, cubes, thin strips of wood, taken in turn, familiarize him with geometrical 1 Emile, I., II. 420 PKACTICAL PEDAGOGY. forms ; yarns and strips of paper drill him in distinguishing colors. What he has seen he will naturally reproduce. For guiding his fii'st attempts it suffices to make him begin with elementary forms. He commences by seeing concrete and tan- gible lines, so to speak, represented by sticks ; at first he has only to lay down and arrange in different ways the laths or the cubes in order to obtain regular figures. Very soon, by weaving the strips of paper, he himself produces mosaics in little squares of' several colors. Finally, when he takes the pencil iu hand, it is easy for him to represent on the slate or on paper the combina- tions which he has produced with these sticks, cubes, and stri]>s of paper, and by means of the incitements of analogy and the help of the squares which guide him without restraining him, and by means of the growing instinct of harmony and symmetry which kindergarten training marvelously develops, he cannot restrict himself to imitating, but he invents almost at once new combinations of lines whose regular arrangement delights him and gives his ceaseless encouragement to new efforts."^ 453. Definition of Terms. — Usage has sanctioned cer- tain expressions, according to which drawing would com- prise different varieties which are wholly distinct, such as linear, geometrical, ornamental, artistic, or imitative draw- ing. Linear drawing is in truth nothing but geometrical drawing, — that is, drawing which is more specially applied to the representntion of objects geometrically defined. Or- namental drawing is but a development of geometrical draw- ing. Finally, artistic or imitative drawing is generally applied to the representation of the human figure. 454. Actual Programmes. — The teaching of drawing was not made obligatory in the common scliools of France till 1882. The decree of July 27, 1882, requires that the teaching of drawing, begun with very short lessons in the elementnry course, " shall occupy in the tw^o other courses two or three lessons each week." 1 M. Buisson, Rapport sur I'expusition tie Vienne, p. 247. DRAWING. — MUSIC. — SINGING. 421 The programme indicates, as matter for the elementary course, the tracing of lines and the first principles of orna- mental drawing. For the intermediate course, free-hand drawing, ordinary geometrical curves, and curves borrowed from the vegetable world ; copying from casts representing ornaments, and the first notion of geometrical drawing as related to the dimen- sions, form, and position of the parts of an object ; finally, geometrical drawing with the use of the rule, tlie compass, the square, and the protractor. In this part of the course the effort will be limited to making pupils understand the use of those instruments which they are to handle in the higher course. For the higher course, elementary notions on the orders of architecture and the drawing of the human liead are added to the free-hand drawing. As to geometrical draw- ing, the traces hitherto executed on the board will now be made on paper with the aid of instruments. The principles of tinting are given, and decorative drawings are executed in cliiua ink and color. 455. At what Age should Instruction in Drawing Begin? — When the child writes rapidly and well, said Locke, I think that it is proper, not only to continue to exercise his hands by writing, but even to give extension to his skill by teaching him to draw. In fact, there are striking similarities between writing and drawing, and these two exercises may and should lend one another mutual support. So in imitation of Froebel we cannot too much encourage the teaching of drawing even in the infant school. " Nothing could be better adapted to a little child than drawing, which occupies his eyes and his hand, and compels him, by the very nature of the exercise and without the necessity of inviting 422 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. him to it, to observe attentively, to compare, and to combine. We intentionally underscore this last word, because it correctly indi- cates the superiority of drawing over the other exercises in obser- vation, where the child looks without having to reproduce what he sees. In the most modest attempts at drawing, there is an element of creation, an active personal part which constitutes one of the greatest attractions of this kind of work. With the pencil in hand, the child invents even more than he copies." ^ 456. Children's Taste for Drawing. — All the ob- servers of human nature, and notably Mr. Spencer, have observed the child's taste for drawing. " The spreading recognition of drawing as an element of education is one amongst many signs of the more rational views on mental culture now lieginning to prevail. Once more it may be remarked that teachers are at length adopting the course which nature has for ages been pressing upon their notice. The spontaneous efforts made by children to represent men, houses, trees, and animals around them, — on a slate, if they can get nothing better, or with lead-pencil or paper, if they can beg them, — are familiar to all. To be shown through a picture-book is one of their highest gratifications; and as usual their strong imitative tendency presently generates in them the ambition to make pictures themselves also. This attempt to depict the striking things they see is a farther instinctive exercise of the perceptions, — a .means whereby still greater accuracy and completeness of observation is induced. And, alike by seeking to interest us in their discoveries of the sensible properties of things, and by their endeavors to draw, they solicit from us just that kind of culture which they most need." '^ 457. Taste for Coloring. — Mr. Spencer has also ob- served that the process of re})resentation which most charms and attracts the child is coloring. 1 Mile. Chalaniet, L'Ecole viaternelle, p. 135. •2 Spencer, op. cit, p. 140. DRAWING. — MUSIC. — SINGING. 423 "Paper and pencil are good, in default of something better; but a box of paints and a brush, — these are the ti'easures. The drawing of outlines immediately becomes secondary to coloring." But is it possible to introduce the use of colors into the common school? The programme admits of it in a certain measure, since it is prescribed for the infant classes in the following terms : " Combination of lines. Representation of these combinations on slate and paper with an ordinary pencil, or by tracing in color." Also in the higher course of the common school, the pro- grannne, as we have seen, recommends exercises in tinting with china ink and in color. 458. Two Different Methods. — It is none the less true that the most important thing in drawing is the line and its combinations, and not color and its shades. What method shall be followed to familiarize the child, as surely and as rapidly as possible, with the study of lines? Two systems are before us, — on the one hand, that which would not have geometry made the basis of instruction in drawing, which asserts that the human form, — being that which is most perfect and most harmonious in its propor- tions, — it is with it that the study of drawing should begin ; on the other hand the classical method, which proceeds log- ically, analytically so to speak, and which, before presenting wholes for the imitation of the child, drills him in reproduc- ing the elements of every figure and of every form, — that is, the lines in their different combinations. 459. Mr. Spencer's Opinion. — Mr. vSpencer vigorously condemns the method which consists ' ' in making straight lines and curved lines and compound lines, with which it is the fashion of some teachers to begin." This is, he says, to renew in the teaching of drawing the exercises which 424 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. have been abandoned in the teaching of languages ; it is again pkicing the aljstract before the concrete. It is difficult to prove, however, that lines, even though they are but the elements of real forms, constitute anything abstract. This is as though, in the teaching of reading, we should forbid the child to learn the letters which are the elements of words. It seems to us that it is best to place at the beginning of the studies in drawing the tracing of lines, their division into equal parts, and the estimation of the relation of lines to one another. This, according to Mr. Spencer's expression, is a "grammar," or rather an alpha- bet, of forms, which must necessarily be learned before going farther. Mr. Spencer's opinion is also that which is advocated in France by M. Ravaisson. " In its most elementary processes," he says, " to which all others may be reduced, drawing reposes on a judgment of a special nature, entirely different from that judgment which is employed in mathematics. . . . The best means of drawing any object whatever will then be to study the objects in which are found in the highest degree those qualities which constitute their harmony and beauty, in such a way as to appropriate, at least as much as one is capable of doing and as his time will permit, the spirit which characterizes them. This will be to study the complete types of the highest perfection which nature presents to us. Even for him who will have, in the practice of the trade to which he devotes himself, only to execute the more modest task of imitation, the best method for succeeding as promptly as possible in fulfilling his duties properly will then be the one which all teachers have always prescribed, and which consists in studying for a long time, and as long as one is able, the types in which is exhibited the unity which impresses on forms their character, and especially the higher unity in which beauty resides." ^ 1 See article Art in the Diet, de pe'dagogie. DRAWING. — MUSIC. — SINGING. 425 The method proposed by M. Ravaisson is undoubtettty the most favorable for the developmeut of the aesthetic fac- ulties and of the sentiment of the beautiful. It is the one perhaps which we would recommend if it were proposed in a common school to train artists ; but in the humble sphere in which the destinies of elementary instruction are placed, it seems to us more rational to follow the other method, that which is based on the solid elements borrowed from geomet- rical representations. 460. Classical Opinion. — This method has been bril- liantly defended by M. E. Guillaume,^ and it is impossible more strongly to enforce the reasons which justify the preference which we have given it. M. Guillaume observes that it is not so much a question of sentiment as of practical habits, and that drawing ought not to remain in the domain of uncertainties, but that it must have a rational basis. "From the fact that drawing serves as a mode of expression in the fine arts, it is inferred that art is its pi'incipal, if not its unique object, and that in the teaching of drawing it is art that should be principally kept in view. The general and use- ful phase, the means of precision which it borrows from science and which serve as a necessary support even to the concep- tions of the artist, are despised; and before knowing how to draw a line or recognize its direction, moral expression becomes the theme. In a trice accuracy is sacrificed to sentiment. Taste is exalted as the supreme rule, and the fundamental principles and exercises, without which, farther on, neither inspiration nor actual works can be produced with certainty, are treated with disdain. The ideal is exalted and pupils are enamored of jesthetic theories, before being inured to practice and becoming masters of the laws which control it. Finally, the attention is i See article Dessin in the Dictionnaire de pMagogie. 426 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. fixed on the artistic vocations which are the exception, while an appeal should be made to the mass, where it is a question of children whose intelligence is developed progressively, and most of whom are destined to be workmen. Is there not a danger in appealing to the initiative and independence of sentiment wlieii the only proper course is to give direction and discipline to minds ? However little a child may follow a course in drawing, he should carry away from it definite ideas and practical hab- its which will be of use to him during his entire life." M. Guillaume concludes that in practice, as iu theory, it is geometry that is the basis of the science of drawing, and that we have to do with industrial drawing or with artistic drawing. If any other course is taken, it is very difficult to arrive at exactness, and the draftsman will run a great risk of always remaining in indecision and vagueness. But this rigorous and scientific method does not exclude the pursuits of the beautiful and the education of the aes- thetic sense ; oul}', instead of being the point of departure, the human figure will be the coronation of the studies in drawing. In the higher course, the copying of figures after the antique will exercise the taste. " From these admirat)le specimens of an art which has never been surpassed, the pupil will develoi^ the artistic faculties which may exist within him. Trained from the first to draw- ing with exactness and precision, he will never remain power- less to translate the delicate or strong works which have been transmitted to us by the most brilliant epochs of art." 4G1. Particular Advice. — It would require too much time to enter into a detail of the school usages which are best adapted to the teaching of drawing. Let us note merely a few essential points. I. So far as possible, the first models ought to be real objects. The programme of the maternal schools rightly DKAWING. — MUSIC. — SINGING. 427 places by the side of the drawings made by the mistress, which the pupil reproduces, '' the representation of the most simple objects of daily use." In other terms, the pupil ought not to be exclusiveW restricted to the study of pure geometrical forms. It is well that he be early exercised in reading and translating the forms of natural objects. II. At first only figures of two dimensions — that is, planes — must be drawn. Figures in relief ought to be re- served for a later period. III. Ornamental drawing ought to follow geometrical drawing. IV. Elementary instruction in drawing, even when we have in view only industrial drawing, ought not to neglect the human form. V. The principles of industrial drawing (,ial)le but just fate. But the purpose of punishments is even more to prevent wrong and to Correct it in time, than to cause expiation for it in an exemplary way. 509. Other Criticisms. — It would be easy to show that, from still other points of view, Mr. Spencer's theory is not in accord with the ideal punishment. " The pain produced by natural consequences," says M. Gre- ard, " is most often enormous with respect to the fault which has produced them ; and man himself claims for his conduct other penalties than those of a hard reality. He would have us judge the intention as well as the fact ; he would have us give him credit for his efforts; and would have us punish him, if need be, but without destroying him, and while reaching out a hand to lift him up." In a word, there is nothing more brutal, more inhuman, than the system which, suppressing all human intervention of the teaclier in the correction of the child, leaves to nature alone the task of cliastising him. Slow in certain cases, the justice of nature is often violent and murderous. Let us add, finally, that the system of natural consequences suppresses moral ideas, — the idea of obligation and duty. It con- fronts the child only with the blind and unconscious forces of necessity. And so Mr. Spencer does not hold to his theory to the end, but to the reactions of nature lie adds the re- actions of the feelings which manifest themselves through the esteem and the affection, or through the censure and the coolness of those wlio surround the cliild, and whom he loves. The discipline of nature can be but a preparation for the discipline of sentiments and ideas. CHAPTEE XII. DISCIPLINE IN GENERAL. 510. Preventive Discipline. — Discipline does not de- pend merely on a system of rewards and punishments ex post facto, as so many sanctions to incite to the good or to divert from the evil. True discipline foresees and prevents, even more than it represses and rewards. In a well-organized school which satisfies certain material conditions, and in which the teacher fulfills certain moral conditions which as- sure his authority, it will hardly ever be necessary to resort to punishment, and rewards will appear rather as a disinter- ested act of justice than as a means of discipline. 511. Material Conditions of Discipline. — All teachers know how much the regularity and system which they introduce into the exercises of the school facilitate their task and contribute to the good order of their class. Pesta- lozzi, who had so many moral qualifications, who possessed to such a high degree the art of making himself loved by children, who employed such devotion and zeal in the service of his pupils, was never able to establish an exact discipline, because he was lacking in method and taught in a disorderly manner, without subjecting Iiiinself to fixed rules for the length of his lessons and for the order of exercises ; in a word, for the distribution of his time. 512. Distribution of Time. — "The distribution of time," says Rendu, "is the principal means of establishing 4GS 464 PKACTICAL PEDAGOGY. discipline. . . . The question of discipline is in great part a question of instruction and method." Through the indications of the programme, which deter- mines at once the topics of instruction and the number of hours which it is advisable to give to each study in the three grades of the common school, the teacher is now guided in the distribution of his time, and no longer runs the risk of falling into mistakes. Let us add, however, that circum- stances, such as the requirements of time and place, the number and relative proficiency of pupils, ought, as between one school and another, to justify considerable differences. We are not of those who dream of an absolute uniformit}', and wish that at a given moment the millions of children who attend the schools of France should be engaged in the same exercise. " The ingenuity of an intelligent teacher ought not to be paralyzed by the rigid inflexibility of a scliedule. We do not assume to impose a time-table upon teachers, as a vise which binds them; we offer it to them as a rule to guide thein. Doubtless, in the domain of common-school instruction more than in any other sphei-e of teaching, there must be required regularity, exactness, and the spirit of system ; but here as everywhere else it is best to leave something to spontaneity, to personal reflection, and to free choice. We dread the absence of method, which leads to school anarchy ; but we detest the circumstantial tyranny whicli, sinking the man iu the master, gives to mechanical education the place due to intelligence." ^ 513. General Principles for the Distribution op Time. — The distribution of time ought not merely to be regulated in advance by the teacher, but it ought to be brought to the knowdedge of the pupils by schedules posted in each class-room. 1 E. Kendu, Manuel, p. 32. DISCIPLINE IN GENEKAL. 465 Without describing in detail the distribution of study hours and of the different topics of instruction, we will state the general principles which result from all that we have said in the preceding chapters. 1. Each section ougiit to be engaged in several differ- ent exercises. With the pupils of the common school, in particular, we must renounce prolonged lessons uix)n the same subject. Such lessons are not possible, save in the higher classes of the colleges or in the courses of higher instruction. 2. Each session ought to be interrupted, either by the ordinary recess or by marching and singing. 3. In schools taught by one master, the teacher will each day come into direct communication with all his pupils, and consequently with each one of the three grades. Hence the necessity of collective lessons, which may bear on certain parts of history, of morals, etc. 4. Each item in the' programme ought each day to have its share in the exercises of the school. None of them ought to be sacrificed, even if but a few minutes can be devoted to some of them. 5. The most difficult exercises, those which require the most attention, ought by preference to come in the early part of the day. 6. The length of each lesson and of each exercise should not as a rule exceed twenty or thirty minutes. 7. Every lesson, every lecture, should be accompanied by oral explanations and interrogations. 8. The correction of tasks and the repetition of lessons take place during the periods assigned to these tasks and lessons. According to the rule the tasks are corrected at the blackboard at the same time that the note-books are inspected. The compositions are corrected by the teacher out of school hours. 466 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 514. Classification of Pupils. — That which hinders the maintenance of discipline as well as the progress of pu]^)ils, is that b}' the very necessity of things there are united in the same class pupils very unequal in age, in degree of instruction, and in intellectual development. Disorder is almost the necessar}'^ result of this disproportion and of these inequalities. Nothing is more important, con- sequently, than the classification of pupils. "Each year, at the opening of school," says the official order of 1882, "the pupils, according to the degree of their in- struction, shall be distributed by the director in the different classes of the three grades under the supervision of the primary inspector." This rule is applicable not only to large schools having several teachers, but also to schools with one teacher. And even in the latter the classification ought to be even more exact if it be possible, because the one teacher, obliged to distril)ute his time among the three grades, ought to be able to depend a little more either upon the initiative of pupils or upon the aid of some intelligent monitors. 515. Consequences from the Disciplinary Point of View. — Who does not see that discipline will gain from a school organization regulated in this si)irit? Invited to an instruction which responds exactly to his powers and to his needs, sustained by the variety of the exercises, reanimated by frequent recreations, always subjected to an invariable rule which he knows, never remaining uncmplo3^ed, instructed in advance with reference to what he ouglit to do at the dif- ferent hours of the day, the pupil will find himself in the best conditions for working with order and profit. 510. Necessity of Vigorous Supervision. — Formal rules, however, are not sufficient. The pupil is not yet DISCIPLINE IN GENERAL. 467 sufficiently master of himself, sufficiently energetic and well- disposed, to follow spontaneously the course that has been traced for him liy a carefully arranged programme. There must be taken into account the weaknesses of will and the thoughtlessness of early age, and the dissipation, indolence, and ill-will common to masses of children. The execu- tion of the laws of the school is dependent on the vigilant eye of the master. How much easier tlie discipline becomes with an active teacher who observes all the movements of his pupils, who watches their dispositions, who stops by a word or a look the beginning of a conversation, who reanimates the attention at the moment when it begins to flag, who, in a word, always present in the four corners of the class-room, is, so to speak, the living soul of the school. 517. The Teacher's Duties out of School. — But the vigilance and solicitude of a good teacher do not cease at the threshold of the school ; they ought to follow the pupil even into the family, and accompany liim in a certain measure on the road which leads him from the school to the home. He may discreetly inform himself of what children do when they have reached home, and how they conduct themselves in the streets or on the roads. Tln-ough the influence which he will discreetly exert upon the conduct of his pupils outside of the school, he will assure their correct deportment and the silence and order of the school-room itself. Children who are too wild at home, or who have been too disorderly on the streets, have great difficult}' when the bell rings to become by an instantaneous transformation attentive and quiet pupils. By the personal lal>or which he will impose upon himself, the teacher will also contribute to the maintennnce of good discipline in the school. A well-prepared lesson is worth much more than punishments for gaining the attention of 468 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. the scholars. "When the teacher reaches his desk, well kuowiug what he ought to do and what he ought to say ; wheu wholly pervaded by his subject he cau pursue las thought without effort, he will first have that assurance that he will more easily interest his auditors and that he will more surely conduct them to the desired end ; and at the same time, relieved from the anxiety of hunting up his ideas and his words, and of organizing his class on the spur of the moment and by a sort of improvisation, he will the more easily be able to survey his little auditory, to be all things to all, and to let nothing escape that is incorrect or abnormal in the conduct of his pupils. Let us add that in order to assure the discipline so far as the pupils' diligence and exactness of works are concerned, the industry of the teacher is particularly necessary. The child of the best intentions is discouraged if the written exercises which he has prepared with the greatest care are never corrected. It is not merely because the faults which he has allowed to pass are proofs of his ignorance, that the lack of correction is mischievous, but mainly because the negligence of the teacher emboldens and partly excuses the negligence of the pupil. 518. Co-operation of Teachers with Parents. — The best of teachers can do nothing in the matter of discipline without the co-operation of parents. "There is no system of education so poor," says Greard, "as not to improve in quality by the intervention of tlie family, and none so good that it cannot gain by it." Rollin regarded the participa- tion of parents in all that concerns moral development as one of the essential factors in the internal government of colleges. What is true of secondary instruction is also true of primary instruction. It is necessary, then, that the teacher should be in constant communication with the DISCIPLINE IN GENERAL. 469 families, that he keep them regularly informed as to the work and progress of their children, and that he bring their faults to their notice. Hence the utilit}^ of reports to parents. Happy the teachers who can co-operate with parents and in- duce them to second their efforts and to supervise the lessons wliich are to be learned and the tasks that are to be written. From this poinfof view, the lessons assigned for home study, besides compelling the pupil to work more than the thirty hours required in the school, have this advantage, that they oblige parents to interest themselves in the studies of their children. But home lessons ought to be easy, and should not require the formal machinery which cannot be realized in most families. " Home duties," savs M. Greard, " ought to be adapted, as the others are, not only to the very limited time which pupils have at their disposal after school, but also and above all to the intensity of the effective efforts which the pupil can make. 1 am not ignorant of tlie fact that in assigning these lessons our teachers sometimes do no more than respond to the de- mands of parents who fear the lack of occupation in the evening, and who estimate work by the quantity of paper that is used. But we ought not to yield to unintelligent desires. It is doubtless well that the pupils of the higher grade should be occupied at home in the evening. Let them engage in the reading of history and geography, in reproducing the explana- tion of wordij taken from a lesson in grammar, or in solving some problems in arithmetic. This is all well, but on the ex- press condition that these exercises offer no difficulty which repels the child left to himself, and that they be connected with a lesson on which his memory is fresh, and particularly that they be short." 519. Moral Influence of the Family. — That which the teacher ought particularly to demand of the family is that it should not dissipate his own efforts, that it should 470 PEACTICAL PEDAGOGY. not contravene his instructions, but that it should add its own more secret, more intimate, more personal action to that which he exerts himself. " We have the right to expect much from the active co- operation of parents, however little they may desire it. We are not ignorant of the difficulties and obstacles which their perspicacity may encounter. We make allowance for illusions and weaknesses. By reason of their very affection, they are in danger of entertaining too high hopes and of despairing, too quickly. The cool and disinterested judgment of a teacher is often necessary to re-establish moderation. And who is nearer the heart of the child than father and mother ? Who can better take into account his instinctive propensities and his nascent passions ; separate his good qualities from his bad ; in his departures from duty distinguish the swooning or transient revolt of radical weakness from obstinate resistance ? Who better knows his sensibility, and how to excite it when necessary ; to subject him, according to circumstances, to the necessities which arise, and to make him triumph over the difficulties which pertain only to himself ? Who can better follow the crises which arrest or hasten his development? In a word, who is better fitted to treat him in all his trans- formations according to his temperament, and give him the moral regime that is best for him ? " ^ 520. Moral Conditions of Discipline. — The co-oper- ation of teachers and parents proceeding in concert, hand in hand, to correct the faults of children and to develop their virtues, is in itself one of the moral conditions of discipline. Another condition is the character of the teacher, his authority, his moral power. What is true of programmes and methods in instruction is also true of rules in discipline, — their value is given to them by those who apply them. It is at this point that we must always start, whether we have 1 M. Greard, Memoir sur I'esprit de discipline. DISCIPLINE IN GENERAL. 471 to do with the internal government of schools or with that of other human institutions. Begin by having men, and all the rest will be given to you to boot. 521. Qualities of a Good Teacher. — Treatises on pedagogy draw up long catalogues of the qualities of a good teacher. We do not propose in this place to present one of these catalogues in which the pedagogic virtues are num- bered, and which require the teachers to have ten or a dozen of them, more or less. The moral education of a teacher has nothing to gain from these fastidious nomenclatures. We shall simply sav that the best teacher is he who has to the highest degree the disposal of intellectual and moral qualities ; he who on the one hand has the most knowledge, method, clearness, and vivacity of exposition, and on the other is the most energetic, the most devoted to his task, the most attached to his duties, and at the same time has most affection for his pupils. It would be easy to show that each of these qualities or virtues is an element of discipline. A teacher whose knowledge is not questioned, who is never obscure in his lessons, who speaks with exactness, will always be listened to with respect. A teacher whose every act is known to be inspired by love for his pupils, has only to speak to be obeyed. He will govern by persuasion. Especially a firm teacher, who possesses the serenity of conscious power, will inspire his pupils with a salutary re- spect which will make it impossible for them to fail in their tasks. In discussing the law of 1833, Guizot stated the principal qualities which he expected of a teacher in the new schools, as follows : " All our efforts and all our sacrifices will be useless, if 472 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. we do not succeed in finding for the reconstructed public school a competent teacher worthy of the noble mission of instructing the people. It cannot be too often repeated that as is the teacher so is the school. And what a happy union of qualities is necessary to make a good school-master ! A good school-master is a man who ought to know much more than he teaches, in order to teach with intelligence and zeal; who ought to live in an humble sphere, and who nevertheless ought to have an elevated soul in order to preserve that dig- nity of feeling and even of manner without which he will never gain the respect and confidence of families ; who ought to possess a rare union of mildness and firmness, for he is the inferior of many people in a commune. But he ought to be the degraded servant of no one ; not ignorant of his rights, but thinking much more of his duties; giving an ex- ample to all, serving all as an adviser ; above all, not desiring to withdraw from his occupation, content with his situation because of the good he is doing in it, resolved to live and die in the bosom of the school, in the service of common-school instruction, which is for him the service of God and of men. To train teachers who approach such a model is a difficult task ; and yet we nuist succeed in it, or we have done nothing for common-school instruction. A bad school-master, like a bad cure or a bad mayor, is a scourge to a commune. We are certainly very often com- pelled to content ourselves with ordinary teachers, but we must try to train better ones, and for this purpose primary normal schools are indispensable." 522. Importance of Physical Qualifications. — The physical qualities of the teacher are not themselves to be despised as an instrument of discipline. Form, physiognomy, and voice play their part in well-conducted schools. It is useless to insist on those qualities which depend wholly on nature ; but what an earnest purpose can control are the general bearing of the body, the appearance of the face, and gestures. DISCIPLINE IN GENERAL. 473 "Never assume without an extreme necessity," said Fenelon, "an austere and imperious air, which makes children trem- ble. Often it is affectation and pedantry in those who govern." Without requiring, as Fenelon wished, that the teacher should always have a smiling and jovial face, it is especially important that he be generally amiable and affectionate, and that he shun pedantry and despotic ways. 523. Moral Authority of the Teacher. — But phy- sical qualities are of little account compared with moral qualities, which are the principal element of authority. By dint of patience, energy, and activity, a teacher, even l)hysically uncomely, may acquire a real ascendancy over his pupils. The teacher is not truly worthy of his name of master, except when he masters his school by the ascendancy of his moral authority. External and in some sort mechan- ical means of discipline are worth nothing, unless they are seconded by the moral force which only good teachers possess, and in schools where this moral authority is well established they become almost useless. " To control the wills of children, to root in their minds the conviction that it is not possible not to follow the orders and suggestions of the teacher, to inspire them with an absolute confidence in his judgment, — these are the essential conditions for the good government of the school." ^ To begin with, the teacher ought to make himself loved. Affection is one of the mainsprings of human activity. What will not one do for those whom he loves ? How easily he obeys them ! And the ])est means to make himself loved is himself to love. But the teacher ought also to make him- self respected and feared. The true discipline is the mingling of mildness and severity. 1 E. Rendu, Manuel, p. 91. 474 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. 524. Continuity in Discipline. — One of the reasons which the most often weaken the authority of the teacher is the disorder, the looseness, and the contradictions which he introduces into the discipline that he imposes. A govern- ment which passes from extreme rigor to extreme weakness, which at one time tolerates an excess of liberty and at another treats the lightest faults with severity, is the worst of governments in education as in politics. A rule once established sliould never be departed from. I well know that this unvarying tension, this uniformity which never wavers, is a difficult thing ; but it is a thing that is neces- sary. The actual education, said Richter wittily, resembles the harlequin of the Italian comedy, who comes on the stage with a bundle of papers under each arm. ' ' What do you carry under your right arm?" "Orders," he replies. "And under your left arm?" " Counter orders." Thus pulled in different directions, disconcerted by contradictory orders, always thinking to escape a rule which is not imperiously followed, the pupil loses all control of himself and goes adrift. 525. Versatility in the Use of Means. — If it is true, on the one hand, that discipline ought to be inflexible in the rules which it imposes, it is none the less necessary, on the other, that it be supple and variable in the means which it employs. All pupils have not the same character, the same disposition. What is relative mildness with some would be extreme severit}' with others. Just as the pro- fessor studies the diversity of intelligences in order to find access to them, and adapts his instruction to the degree of aptness of each mind, so the educator ought to take account of differences of character, and estimate the degree of power and of weakness in each temperament, so as to adjust aid to need and to distribute equitably as the case requires reward or punishment. DISCIPLINE IN GENERAL. 475 "His object," says M. Greard again, "is to follow the child across the different phases of his moral life, and in the common life whose rules he follows to assure to him the development of his individual life." With some the teacher must ever be affectionate and good ; with others he must use severity. At one time he must multiply excitations to arouse a sluggish nature ; at another he must use moderation and constraint. With one he must always talk reason ; with another he will make a constant appeal to feeling. 526. The Higher Purpose of Discipline. — Discipline does not tend merely to establish silence and good order in classes, assiduous and exact labor ; but it thinks of the future and aims at training men. Its purpose in some sort is to make itself useless. School authority ought to be exercised only with the intention of making the child inde- pendent of the yoke of all external authority. Not that an absolute enfranchisement of the human person is to be dreamed of ; at every age and in all conditions man will alwa3's have to obey, — bis superiors under the flag and in the worksliop, the law and its re{)resentatives in society. But this necessary subjection does not prevent liberty, which is the discii)line that one imposes on himself ; and the object of education of all grades is to make men free. Hence the characteristics of the discipline truly liberal, which does not attempt to establish obedience by fear and passive habits, but which ever addresses itself to the personal activity and the will, which respects the dignity of the child, which exalts rather thnn humiliates, which does not stifle the natural powers, but which trains them to govern them- selves. • " This reflective enfranchisement, which is the purpose of education," says M. Greard, "requires in the child two iu- 476 PRACTICAL PEDAGOGY. dispensable conditions of inward toil, — reflection and activ- ity ; — reflection, which renders account to one's self, and activity, which comes to a decision. No one attains to self- direction except at this price. " To put to use the moral aptitudes which lie concealed in the consciousness of the child and to make him know their tendencies, the evil as well as the good; to accustom him to look clearly into his mind and heart, to be sincere and true, to make him put in practice in his conduct, little by little, the resolutions he forms ; insensibly to substitute for the rules which have been given him those which he gives himself, and for the discipline from without that which is from within; to enfranchise him, not by beat of drum after the ancient manner, but day by day, by striking oif at each step of progress one link of the chain which at- taches his reason to the reason of another ; after having thus aided him in establishing himself as his own master, to teach him to come out of himself and to judge and govern himself as he would judge and govern others ; finally, to show him above himself the grand ideas of duty, public and private, which are imposed on him as a human and social being ; — - such are the principles of the education which can make the pupil pass from the discipline of the school under the discipline of his own reason, and which creates his moral personality by calling it into exercise." APPENDIX. A. Page 133. The Doctrine of Memory. In stating the doctrine that the memory should not anticipate the intelligence, M. Compayre is doubtless in accord with most modern writers on education ; yet it seems to me that this ground is taken rather as a recoil from an old error than from a due consideration of the relation which the memory bears to the other intellectual faculties. It must be plain that the exercise of the intelligence pi-esupposes the presence of some material on which the mind can react in the way of elaboration, and that this material must be held within the range of the mind's elaborative power. Retention and representation must therefore precede the process of thought. To say that we should memorize only what we understand is very much like saying that we should commit nothing to the stomach until it has been digested. We eat to the end that we may digest; and we must confide material to the retentive power of the mind in order that the intelli- gence may have something to work upon. The only question in the case seems to me to be this : Shall this material be held loosely, by what the author calls the " liberal memory of ideas," or exactly, by what he calls the " strict memory of words " ? This last is doubtless what is usually called " memorizing," or " learning by heart." In many cases informal, or loose, memoriz- ing will suffice ; but in other cases exact or verbal memorizing is best. But in either case the memory must anticipate the intelligence. 477 478 APPENDIX- Material that has been transformed by the elaborative power of the mind (the understanding) nmst then be held for the [)er- manent use or adornment of the spirit by a sort of organic regis- tration ; and it is doulitless this final and perfect form of the retentive process which writers have in view when they say that nothing must be memorized which is not understood. If it is recollected that there is also a form of retention which precedes the act of thaught proper, all the real difficulties of this subject will disappear, and there will be no antagonism between psycho- logical theory and the universal practice of mankind. (P.) B. Page 282. Analysis and Synthesis. That writers on education use the terms analysis and synthesis in directly contrary senses, and that great confusion has thereby been introduced into the discussion of method, is a fact which must be admitted and one which is greatly to be deplored ; but the important question still remains. Is there a real and an intelligible sense in which these terms are descriptive of mental phenomena ? Is there a mode of mental activity in which aggre- gates are resolved into constituent parts, and another mode in which parts are reconstructed into aggregates ? If there is, then the term analysis may be intelligently applied to the first and the term synthesis to the second. As to the psychological fact there can be no doubt. Perhaps the clearest statement of this law of mental activity has been made by Sir William Hamilton in these terms : " The first procedure of the mind in the elaboration of its knowledge is always analytical. It descends from the whole to the parts, from the vague to the definite." " This is the fundamental procedure of philosophy, and is called by a Greek term Annlysh.'" " But though analysis be the fundamental procedure, it is still APPENDIX. 479 only a means towards an end. We analyze only that we may comprehend ; and we comprehend only uiasmuch as we are able to reconstruct in thought the complex effects which we have analyzed into their elements. This mental reconstruction is, therefore, the final, the consummative procedure of philosophy, and is familiarly known by the Greek term Synthesis." It thus appears that the terms analysis and synthesis, employed in the very same sense as in chemistry, are necessary in order to formulate a fundamental law of mental activity ; and this law is the safest clew we have in the discussion of method, as it evi- dently underlies the whole art of presentation. (P.) C. Page 298. The Problem of Primary Reading. This problem admits of what might be called a psychological solution, and furnishes a typical illustration of the deduction of a method from a general principle. This problem may be stated comprehensively as follows : To assist the child in making the most direct transition from spoken to written language. Or, the problem may be stated analytically in these terms : (1) To teach the child a small and select vocabulary of printed words; and (2) to give him power to name new words for himself. 1. The principal methods that have been employed for intro- ducing the child to the art of reading are the following : (1.) The Alphabetic; (2.) The Phonic; (3.) The Phonetic ; (4.) The Word ; (5.) The Sentence. The first three methods proceed from elements (letters) to aggregates (words), and are therefore analytic ; while the last two proceed from aggregates (words or sentences) to elements (syllables and letters), and are therefore synthetic. The question now at issue is this : Which procedure conforms to the organic mode of mental activity, the analytic or the synthetic? From the psychological law stated under B, 480 APPENDIX. the inference is irresistible that preference must be given to methods which are analytical ; so that our choice is now between the Word and the Sentence methods. Both are correct in principle ; but as the smaller aggregate seems to me the more convenient and manageable, I give my preferences to the Word Method. 2. In order to name (pronounce) new words for himself, a child must know three things : (1.) The letters of the alphabet ; (2.) The elementary sounds of the language ; and (o.) The association of letter and sound. It must be plain that in order to pronounce a new word of his own accord, the pupil must be able to infer its name from its for7n, and reading aloud might be called translating form into sound; and this power of inference, though never infallible, can be gained from a ready knowledge of these three elements. The question now presented is this : How can these three things be taught the most expeditiously ? Without entering into any explanation or discussion the following summary answer may be given : (1.) The easiest way to teach the elements of words is by requiring the pupil to print or draw them on slate, board, or paper ; (2.) The best way to teach the elementary sounds of the language is by phonic analysis or slow pronunciation; (3.) The association of letter and sound is best taught by oral spelling. According to this analysis the successive steps in teaching a child to read are as follow : 1. Teaching the names of familiar words (say two hundred), at sight upon the authority of the teacher; 2. Teaching the names of the letters by printing words ; 3. Teaching the elementary sounds by the analysis of spoken words ; 4. Teaching the powers of the letters by oral spelling. (P.) D. Page 366. The Value op Subjects. Three ideas should be embodied in a course of study : (1.) The idea of training or discipline ; (2.) The idea of practical utility ; APPENDIX. 481 (3.) The idea of culture, one chief mark of which is contem- plative delight. Under another form this thought may be expressed as follows : Education should form or train the mind, and furnish it with knowledge for two purposes, — practical use and enjoyment. The three values involved in studies may be called the disciplinary, the practical, and the culture values respect- ively. Every subject doubtless has these three values, though in different degrees, but each subject is characterized by what may be called its major value. In other terms, there are three lines of defence for the various studies included in a curriculum, and a subject which is known to have a high value of either sort is entitled to a place in a course of study. A disciplinary study communicates power; a practical study furnishes knowledge for use ; and a culture study conmiuuicates organic power and furnishes knowledge for enjoyment. With this distinction, and with major values in view, the studies of the common school course may be grouped as follow: 1. Practical Studies : Reading, writing, spelling, the fundamental processes of arithmetic, language lessons, hygiene, civics. 2. Disciplinary Studies : Arithmetic and grammar. 3. Culture Studies : Geography, history, and literature. Geography has the same kind of value as travel, and it might be called traveling by proxy. The direct practical value of Geography, that is, its value as estimated by the actual use which each individual makes of it, is very small ; while its indirect value, that is, the value which comes to us through the knowledge which other persons have of it, is very large. One may be igno- rant of an art or science, and yet may enjoy all the practical benefits flowing from it. In all such cases its value is of the indirect order. In constructing a course of study for a common school, only direct practical values must be taken into account. In Chapter III. of my "Contributions to the Science of Educa- tion " I have discussed this subject at some length. (P.) INDEX. [the numbers refer to pages.] Abstraction, 169 ; child's repug- nance to, 173 ; difficulties of, 174. Action, relation of feeling to, 196. Adolphus, Gustavus, 149. Esthetic education, 245. Agriculture, teaching of, 438. Alexander the Great, 149. Amoras, 43, 234. Analysis, 280, 478 ; grammatical and logical, 336. Ancients, aesthetic education among, 249. Antoine, M., 146. Aptitudes, special, 71. Apollo, 146. Aristotle, 187. Arithmetic, 440, 445 ; importance of, 379 ; utility of, 381 ; child's taste for, 381 ; general method of, 382; material aids, 384; numeral frames, counting-ma- chines, 385 ; mental, 385 ; prob- lems, 386 ; metric system, 387 ; faults, 388. Arts, 249 ; and morals, 250 ; a source of pleasure, 251 ; in com- mon schools, 263 ; as moralizers, 256. Association of ideas, 135. Attention, culture of, 94. Bachelier, 417. Bacon, Lord, 269, 287. Bain, Professor, 13n, 18, 74, 115, 120, 125, 134, 141, 173, 175, 176, 211, 225, 245, 251, 252, 256, 291n, 295, 312, 315, 316, 318, 319, 321, 330n,331n, 332,334, 351, 361, 365, 366, 367, 369, 371, 375, 380, 382, 383, 387, 455, 457, 458, 459, 460. Baldwin, James, 55, 72. Beautiful, love of the, 248 ; how cultivated, 253. Belgium, schools of, 443, methods in, 298, 341. Bentham, 92. * Berger, 306, 333. Bert, Paul, 393, 395, 435, 439. Bible, in moral education, 224. Bishop of Versailles, 50n. Blackie, J. S., 90, 133, 135, 149, 158, 206, 222, 224, 244. Bossuet, 24, 169, 231, 450. Botany, 394. Bourdaloue, 243. Bracket, 334. 483 484 INDEX. Braun, M. H., 270n, 360. Breal, 110, 325, 332, 334, 340. Bridguian, Laura, 77. Brooks, Edw., 69. Brouard, 298, 307. Buffon, 97. Buisson, 21, 176n, 280n, 284, 286, 287, 295, 299, 301, 303, 323, 354, 360, 367, 373, 374, 370, 385n, 388, 398, 420. Byron, Lord, 206. Cadet, F., .341, 443. Campan, Muie., 116, 117, 451. Cartesians, the, 210, 247. Chalaniet, Mile., 42, m, 148, 195, 254, 293, 311, 313, 381, 422, 428. Chanipfleury, 152, 198. Character, 244. Charbonneau, 282. Chateaubriand, 114. Chauvet, 27. Chemistry, 394. Child, physiology of, 33 ; intellect- ual state of, 59 ; respect for, 64 ; in the cradle, 73 ; memory in the, 115 ; has it creative imagin- ation ? 145 ; judgment in the, 162 ; tendency to generalize, 171 ; repugnance to abstraction, 173 ; reasoning in the, 178 ; develop- ment of sympathy in the, 189; marks of sensibility, 190 ; neither good nor bad, 208 ; evil instincts of, 209 ; moral sense in the, 214 ; imitative instinct in the, 220 ; will in the, 228 ; taste for num- bers, 381. Cinderella, 151. Civic instruction, history and, 360, 411 ; teaching, 397,408 ; necessity of, 409; methods in, 411; and politics, 412. Classification, of pupils, 466. Cleanliness, 38. Clothing, 29. Cocheris, .320. Color-blindness, 87. Comenius, 75, 144, 151, 241, 302. Composition, 153 ; exercises in, 338 ; from pictures, 340. Condillac, 75, 96, 178, 227. Condorcet, 199. Conscience, 203, 212. Consciousness, 94 ; education of, 95. Counting-machines, 385. Cuignet, 82. Culture, methods of, 56 ; of the senses, 76 ; of the attention, 94. Curiosity, 106. Daguet, 267, 275, 280, 282. Darwin, 214. Da Vinci, Leonardo, 253. Deduction, 180, 181, 276. De Guimps, Roger, 219n, 430. Delaunay, 299. Denzel, 11. De Maintenon, Mme., 132, 195, 460. De St. Pierre, Abbe, 165, 197. De Sales, 136. De Saussure, 10, 59, 60, 68, 79, 83, 101, 107, 125, 139, 147, 152, 155, 157, 160, 208, 211, 240, 254, 269, 403. De Se'vigne, Mme., 37, 143. Desire, difference between will and, 228. De Stael, Mme., 67. INDEX. 485 Dictation exercises, 445. Didactics, 267. Diderot, 180, 449. Diesterweg, 6, 7, 17. Difficulties, in education of the feelings, 188; in moral educa- tion, 219. Discipline, music and, 430 ; school, 447 ; means of, 447 ; of conse- quences, 460 ; in general, 463 ; moral conditions of, 470 ; impor- tance of physical qualifications, 472; versatility in the use of means, 474 ; continuity in, 474 ; higher purpose of, 475. Dore, G., 121. Douliot, 1.34n. Drawing, in the common school, 417 ; historical, 418 ; definitions, 420 ; programme, 420 ; at what age should instruction in it begin f 421 ; children's taste for, 422 ; taste for coloring, 422 ; two methods, 423 ; partic- ular advice, 426. Duclos, 295. Dupange, M., 429, 431. Dupanloup, 13n, 15, 54, 64, 106. Duruy, 343. Duties, the teacher's, out of school, 467. Economy, domestic, 443. Edgeworth, Miss, 89, 105, 108, 109, 110, 162, 193, 245. Education, origin of the word, 3 ; the prerogative of man, 3 ; is there a science of ? 4 ; pedagogy and, 4 ; definitions, 9 ; divisions, 13, 14; liberal, 15; the work of liberty, 19 ; of authority, 20 ; power and limits of, 23 ; and the school, 24 ; in a republic, 25 ; character-building the supreme end, 26; physical, 28; intel- lectual, 52 ; progressive, 60 ; pain in, 68; practical, 71; of the senses, 73 ; of conciousness, 95 ; of the memory, 114 ; of the imag- ination, 138 ; of the judgment, 159; of the reason, 179; of the feelings, 185 ; abuse of the feel- ings in, 191 ; moral, 203, 397 ; in liberty, 233 ; the will and, 240 ; religious, 245 ; aesthetic, 245 ; self, 241; of the heart, 402; through reflection, through prac- tice, 403. Effort, necessity of, 67. Egger, 74, 103, 147, 152, 166, 104, 216. Elocution, 341. Emerson, 19n. Emotions, division of, 186 ; relation to ideas, 194 ; to action, 196. Emulation, in school discipline, 448. English methods, 175, 258, 347, 350. Esquimaux, anecdote of, 109. Faculties, equilibrium and har- mony of, 61 ; mutual support of, 62 ; moral, 203. Family, moral influence of the, 469. Feelings, culture of the, 485 ; rela- tion of the will to the, 230 ; tlie higher, 246. Fc'nelon, 24, 67, 106, 200, 286, 333, 450, 473. 486 INDEX. Ferri, L., 217. Ferry, Jules, 412, 433, 434. Feudal system, lesson on the, 355. Feuerbach, 39. Feuillet, M., 450, 452. Fitch, 130, 347. France, public school system of, 416 ; methods in, 258 ; University of, 416. Franklin, Dr., 234. Frich, 381. Froebel, 49, 70, 78, 79, 105, 151, 275n, 300, 390, 419, 421. Foncin, 367, Fontenelle, 23, 126, 239. Food, 39. Foussagrives, 39, 87, 102. Forms, geometrical, 419. Gauthey, 143, 146, 153, 196, 201, 221, 242. Generalization, 169, 174, 176, 481. Geography, 362, 445 ; progress in studies, 362 : new methods, 363 ; definitions, 364 ; utility of, 365 ; divisions, 360 ; begin early, 368 ; methods, 369 ; national, 370 ; correct methods in, 371 ; maps, 373 ; globe, 376 ; text-books, 376 ; physical, in the education of the reason, 179. Geometry, 419, 440 ; in common schools, 389 ; purpose and meth- od of, 390 ; elementary course, 391 ; intuitive, 392 ; tachymetry, 392. George, Dr., 36. German schools, 165 ; methods in, 294, 296, 350. Gill, 273n. Girard, Pere, 151, 187, 328, 365. Girardin, 31. Globe, in geography, 376. Goldsmith, 38. Good, love of the, 225. Grammar, 327-9, 445 ; necessity of, 330 ; true method, 331 ; text^ books, 332 ; qualities of a good text-book, 333 ; historical, 333. Grant, Horace, 102. Gre'ard, Pcre, 46n, 64, 79, 90, 92, 291, 331, 337, 339, 340, 342, 346, 350, 359, 369, 410, 434, 442, 444, 462, 468-70, 475. Greeks, the, 29, 249, 254 ; their lan- guage, 334 ; their education, 429, 450. Guizot, M., 24, 61, 114, 186, 295, 471. Guizot, Mme., 71, 192, 207, 209, 212. Guillaume, M. E., 294, 298n, 425. Gymnastics, 36, 40, 234n, 433 ; mili- tary, 43 ; for girls, 44 ; pro- grammes for, 46 ; play and, 47. Habit, 227 ; habits, 236. Hall, 294. Hardouin, Pcre, 126n. Hamilton, Sir Wm., 478. Hearing, education of the, 81. Hegel, 186. Helvetius, 23. Herder, 254, 328, 368. History, 445 ; education of the reason by, 179; exciting patriot- ism, 194, 343 ; in moral educa- tion, 221 ; in common schools, 343; purpose of, 343; influence on the development of the mind, 344 ; character and limits of in- INDEX. 487 struction, 345 ; fundamental no- tions, 846 ; two systems, o47 ; old system, school programme, 348 ; regressive method, 350 ; general method, ordinary faults, 351 ; suggestions, 352 ; intuition in, 353 ; lesson on the feudal system, 355; text-books, 357; summaries, and narratives, 358 ; incidental aids, 359 ; civic instruction, 3(50, 411 ; and geography, 300. Horner, 282, 297-8, 338-9, 384. Humanities, the, 15. Hume, 154. Huxley, 15. Hygiene, school, 86 ; of the senses, 76 ; myopia, 87. Ideas, general and abstract, 170, 173 ; general before language, 171 ; relation of emotions to, 194 ; difference betv?een will and, 229. Imagination, education of the, 138. " Imitation of Jesus Christ," 220. Induction, 180, 276 ; essential points and examples, 183. Inequalities, intellectual, 70. Instruction, methods of, 56 ; pleas- ure in, 67. Intellectual education, 52. Intelligence, beginning of, 73. Intuition, 283 ; in history, 353 ; in- tuitions, 174-5. Jacotot, 70, 120, 124, 275n, 297, 299, 361. Jacoulet, 81. Janet, Paul, 95, 139, 170, 259, 397, 399, 401, 403, 40^. Jansenists, the, 208. Javal, Dr., 4.3n. Jesuits, the, 16, 68. Johnson, Dr., 132. Johonnot, James, 55, 129, 313-4, 318. Joly, 11, 58. Jouftroy, 191. Jowett, 19n. Judgment, the, 126, 159 ; culture of the, 161 ; in the child, 162. ■ Kant, 10, 11, 18, 20, 62, 67, 111, 127, 140, 147, 200, 208-9, 213-4, 232-3, 236, 243, 260. Kindergarten, the, 300. Kingsley, Charles, 36. Knowledge, and will, 227. Kohn, M., 87. Laboulaye, 168. La Bruyere, 209, 452. Lacombe, 107. Laisne', 44, 46n, 48. La Fontaine, 122-3n, 146, 209, 257. Lakanal, 292. Language, the study of, 325; les- sons, 328. La Rochefoucauld, 242. Larominguiere, 98. Latin, the study of, 41, 334n. Laurie, S. S., 288, 386. Lavisse, 346, 355. Legouve, 83, 118, 136, 210. Leibnitz, 25, 95n, 117. Levasseur, 370, 372. Leyssenne, 390-1. Lhomond, 330, 351. Liberty, 231 ; education in, 233. Life, importance of the wiU in, 244. 488 INDEX. Lincoln, D. F., 36. Literature, teaching, 341. Littre', 281, 366. Locke, 9, 28, 31, 37, 39, 52, 70, 75, 107, 112, 119-20, 178, 180, 224, 293, 421, 434, 450, 459. Luther, 149. Luys, 120. Maclaren, A., 36. Malebranche, 139. Mann, Horace, 14, 25, 26. Manual labor, in common schools, 433 ; importance of, 433 ; indus- tries in schools for boys, 435 ; who should give lessons, 436 ; order of lessons, 437 ; agricul- ture, 438; military drill, 489; industries in schools for girls, 440 ; needle-work, 441 ; abuses of, 442 ; domestic economy, 443. Maps, in general, 373 ; in atlas, 373 ; wall, 374 ; relief, 374. Marcel, 338. Marcellus, 353. Marche-Girard, Mile., 127. Marcus Aurelius, 223. Marion, 5, 11, 23, 31, 51, 122u, 191, 199, 202, 237, 246, 250, 258, 269, 402. Martha, M., 257. Mathematics, 180, 380. Military drill, 439. Mill, James, 12. Mill, John Stuart, 10, 234, 252. Mind, instruction and education of, 54 ; not a vase, but a fire, 63 ; inner development of, 68. Memory, the doctrine of, 133, 477 ; education of the, 114 ; function in geography, 372 ; in arithmetic, 387. Mental arithmetic, 385. Methodology, 267. Methods, 56, 69, 265-6, 272. Metric system, 382, 388. Mineralogy, 394. Mnemonics, 134. Mobiles, 191. Moliere, 178. Montaigne, 3, 29, 72, 118, 120, 127, 129, 133, 161, 186, 238, 299, 313. Morality, 216. Morals, consequence of defective attention in, 113 ; and educa- tion, 185, 203, 260 ; teaching, 397 topics, 399 ; scope and limits 399; courses, 400; methods, 401 characteristics of instruction 401 ; teaching through the heart 402 ; through i-efiection, 403 through practice, 403 ; exercises 404 ; example of the teacher. 405; incidental marks, 406 reading, 407 ; poetry, 407 ; theo- retical, 408 ; lay rights, 413 ; in- fluence of music, 428 ; influence of family on, 469. Mother-tongue, study of the, 325. Motives, 191. Movement, need of, 104. Mozart, 121. Museums, school, 313. Music, moral influence of, 429 ; and discipline, 430 ; theory of, 432. Myopia, in children, 87. Namur, 283. Napoleon I., 206, 429. Narratives, 149. INDEX. 489 Nature, principles of, 16 ; what are we to understand by 1 17 ; re- strictions, 18. Newton, 97, 178. Nicole, 62, 68, 71, 97, 178, 330, 368. Niemeyer, 11. Non multa, sed multum, 64. Novelty, effects upon attention, 108. Numeral frames, 384. Observation, 89 ; in the child, 90. (_)bject-lessons, 175, 285, 310 ; rules for, 317; method of, 324; in arithmetic and geometry, 393; in science, 394. Oral exercises, 445. Orthography, 328, 335. See " Spell- ing." Page, David P., 304. Pain, 199 ; in education, 68. Pape-Carpantier, Mme., 38, 46, 05, 87, 89, 93, 140, 196n, -302, 311, 313, 319, 324, 338, 354, 442. Parents, co-operation with teach- ers, 468. Pascal, 30, 114, 123, 139, 253, 446, 452. Passions, the, 201. Payne, W. H., notes by, 5, 8, 17-8, 41, 52-3, 66, 191, 298, 326-7, 336, 392; the doctrine of memory, 477 ; analysis and synthesis, 478; the problem of primary reading, 479; value of subjects, 480. Pe'caut, Dr., 36, 46n, 151, 406. Pedagogics, 5. Pedagogy, its scientific principles. 7 ; relation to psychology, 7 ; to other sciences, 9 ; practical, 265. Perception, 89. Perceptions, 14 ; acquired, 77. Perez, Bernard, 80,86, 99, 171, 189, 214, 217, 248. Pestalozzi, 8, 20, 78, 141, 15.3, 218n, 219, 268, 275n, 285, 306, 310, 321, 363, 410, 419, 431, 459, 463. Peter the Great, 38. Phillip, Frere, 162. Physical education, 28; in Eng- land, 49. Physics, 394. Physiology, of the child, 33. Pictures, 144. Pillans, Professor, 67. Plato, 10, 19n, 23, 30, 45, 50, 249, 429. Platrier, 312. Play, 152 ; and gymnastics, 47 ; necessity of, 48 ; imagination in, 152. Pleasure, 199 ; in instruction, 67. Plutarch, 223, 225. Poetry, 150 ; in moral instruction, 407. Politics, and civic instruction, 412. Pompce, 218n. Port Royal, 265, 295 ; logic, 124, 161. Practical, aim of education the, 71. Practice, education through, 403. Precepts, in moral education, 244. Prizes, 455. Problems, in arithmetic, 386. Psychology, relation of pedagogy to, 7 ; is there an infant ? 8 ; methods based on, 57. Punishments, 456 ; reprimands. 490 INDEX. 456 ; actual, 457 ; threats, 457 ; tasks or impositions, 458 ; cor- poral, 45U ; general rules, 459. Quintilian, 143n. Rabelais, 132, 450. Rambert, 384. Ravaisson, M., 253, 255, 424. Reading, 290, 446 ; teaching, 292 ; alphabetic method, 294 ; pho- netic, 296; analytic and syn- thetic, 297 ; taught with writing, 298 ; accessory processes, 302 ; expressive, 304 ; in moral in- struction, 407 ; primary, 479 ; word method, 480. Reasoning, 159, 177 ; education in, 179 ; exercises in, 181. Reclus, Elise'e, 371. Recitation, selections for, 131. Reflection, the faculties of, 59 ; ed- ucation through, 403. Religious education, 245 ; senti- ment, 258 ; in common schools, 259 ; morals and, 260. Rendu, E., 123n, 131, 255, 303n, 306-7, 386, 454, 4(i3-4, 473. Rewards, 447 ; kinds of, 454 ; praise and commendation, 454 ; other, 455. Riant, 36. Ribot, 23, 120. Richter, 474. Rigault, 254n. Roll in, 121-3, 450, 468. Romans, the, 172. Romances, 151. Rousseau, 6, 12, 16, 18, 31, 36, 58, 61, 65, 67, 74n, 75, 78, 79, 80, 116, 139, 146, 150, 160, 164, 180, 186-7, 192-3, 207-8, 210, 219, 233, 236, 246, 260, 293, 310, 363, 418, 434, 450. Rousselot, 154n, 242, 265n, 304. Rules, pedagogical, 175; for the education of the feelings, 193. Saffray, Dr., 82. St. Augustine, 208, 416. St. Paul, 208. Schrader, 367. Science, education of the reason by, 179; of education, is there a? 4. Sciences, in common schools, 379, 393 ; programmes and methods, 394 ; practical character, 395 ; scientific excursions, 395 ; text- books, 395. Sensations, 75. Sense-intuitions, 70. Sense-perception, abuse of, 322. Senses, education of the, 73 ; at^ tention through the, 103. Sewing, domestic, 441. Sight, education of the, 83. Simon, Jules, 11. Singing, in the common schools, 427 ; in maternal schools ; moral influence of, 428 ; and discipline, 430 ; choice of pieces, 430 ; meth- oc.sand processes, 431 ; intuition in, 431 ; theory of, 432. Sisyphus, 96. Smell, education of the, 79. Socrates, 19n, 53. Souvestre, 27. Spelling, the old and the new, 295. See " Orthography." INDEX. 491 Spencer, H., 10, 29, 34, 37-40, 44, 47-8, 53, 58, 05-7, 91, 128, 312, 316, 328, 340, 387, 391, 404, 422-3, 4G0-2. Stein, 11. Studies, 66 ; value of subjects, 480. Stilly, 13n, 109, 148, 168, 191, 201, 230. Supervision, necessity of vigorous, 466. Swiss methods, 273, 281, 298, 338. Syllogism, the, 181. Synthesis, 280, 478. Tachymetry, 392. Taine, H., 49, 163, 172. Tales, 148. Talleyrand, 267. Taste, culture of the, 79, 255. Teacher, example of the, 405 ; co- operation with parents, 468 ; qualities of a good, 471; mora! authority of the, 473. Teaching, abi;se of abstraction in, 173 ; morals, 204. Text-books, in grammar, 332 ; in science, 395. Tiedemann, 147. Time, distribution of, 463 ; general principles for, 464. Tissot, Dr., 46n. Truth, 245. Vaiet, 208. Variety, effects of, 108. Vauvenargues, 127. Vergnes, Capt., 40. Verne, Jules, 151. Vernet, H., 121. Vessiot, 206, 217, 219. Villemain, 120. Vincent, M., 442. Vinet, 237. Vitce, non schoUe, discitur, 71. Vitet, 410. Voice, the teacher's, 330. Volney, .38. Voltaire, 346. Von Sydow, 374. White, E. E., On. Wickersham, J. T., 69, 312, 315 322, 364. Words, without things, 321. Writing, 290 ; taught with reading, 298 ; teaching, 305 Zoology, 394. Industrial Education : a Pedagogic and Sodal Necessity. Together with a Critique upon Objections Advanced. By Robert Seidel, Mollis, Switzerland. Translated by Margaret K. Smith, State Normal School, Oswego, New York. A good idea of the value of this book may be gained from the following TABLE OF CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. The Inner Relation between Industrial Instruction AND THE Social Question. CHAPTER II. Errors, Contradictions, and Inconsistencies of the Opponents of Industrial Instruction. CHAPTER HI. The Economic Objections to Industrial Instruction. — I. Competition. — II. Speculation. — in. Diminution of the Number of Purchasers. — iv. Misconception of the Utility of Division of Labor. CHAPTER IV. The Plai;sible and Legal Objections to Industrial Instruction. — I. The Child's Inchnation for Activity is sufficiently culti- vated in the Family. — ii. The Father should instruct the Son in his Handi- craft. — III. Compulsory Industrial Instruction would interfere with the Parents' Rights. — iv. The Rural Population require no Industrial Edu- cation. CHAPTER V. The Objections of Educators and Schoolmen to Industrial Instruction. — i. The Aim of the School and of Industrial Instruction. — 11. Can Gymnastics secure harmonious Development? — iii. The School already pursues Hand Labor. — iv. Disciplinary and Educa- tional Value of Drawing, Industrial, and Science Instruction. — v. Objec- tive Methods of Instruction in Forest and Field. — vi. Objective and Hand-Labor Instruction. — vii. Industrial Instruction can not remedy the Disadvantages of the Present School System. — viii. Increase of Hours for Instruction. — ix. Hand Labor should be Vacation Employment, and in Childhood merely Play. — X. School Hand Labor and Choice of a Pro- fession.— xi. The Decline of the Teacher's Position. — xii. The Union of Study and Labor in the School. — xiii. Method of Industrial Instruction. CHAPTER VI. What do the Classic Educators say of Industrial Instruction? CHAPTER VII. Educational and Social Necessity for Industrial Instruction. — Supplementary RisuM^. — Conclusion. D. C. HEATH & CO., Publishers, 3 Tremont Place, Boston. New Books on Education. \ do not think that you have ever printed a bool< on education that is not worthy to go on any "Teacher's Reading List," and the best list. — Dr. William T. Harris. Compayre s History of Pedagogy. Translated by Professor W. H. Payne, University of Michigan. Price by mail, $1.75. The best and most compi hensive history of education in English. — Dr. G. S. Hall. GiWs Systems of Education. An account of the systems advocated by eminent educationists. Price by mail, $1.10. I can say truly that I think it eminently worthy of a place on the Chautauqua Reading List, because it treats ably of the Lancaster and Bell movement in Education, — a very important phase. — Dr. William T. Harris. Radestock' s Habit in Ediicatio7i. With an Introduction by Dr. G. Stanley Hall. Price by mail, 65 cents. It will prove a rare "find" to teachers vifho are seeking to ground themselves in the philosophy of their art. — E. H. Russell, Prin. of Normal School, Worcester, Mass. Rousseati s Entile. Price by mail, 85 cents. , There are fifty pages of Emile that should be bound in velvet and gold. — Voltaire. Perhaps the most influential book ever written on the subject of education. — R. H. QuiCK- PestalozzVs Leonard and Gertrude. With an Introduction by D,r. G. Stanley Hall. Price by mail, 85 cents. If we except Rousseau's " Emile " only, no more important educational book has appearec for a century and a half than Pestalozzi's " Leonard and Gertrude." — The Nation. Richters Lev ana ; rhe Doctrme of Edncatiort. A book that will tend to build up that department of education which is most neglected and yet needs most care — home training. Price by mail, $1.35. A spirited and scholarly book. — Prof. W. H. Payne, University of Michigan. Rosmini's MetJiod in Edjication. Price by mail, $1.75. The best of the Italian books on education. — Editor London yournal ef Education. Hall's Methods of Teaching History. A symposium of eminent teachers of history. Pris* by mail, 1^1.40. Its excellence and helpfulness ought to secure it many readers. — The Nation. Bibliography of Pedagogical LiteratJire. Carefully selected and annotated by Dr. G. Stanley Hall. Price by mail, $1.75. Lectures to Ki^idero^artners. By Elizabeth P. Peabody. Price by mail, $1.10. Monographs on Education. (25 cents each.) D. C. HEATH & CO., Publishers, BOSTON, NEW YORK, AND CHICAGO. o UbHARY OF CONGRESS 019 847 615 8 !;<'<;X^^-.v.^>>^>^>x>x>:K>-^x,oooo^^